DAYS AND NIGHTS SALMON FISHING. A 2 London : Frintrd by A. SpoTTi5Woor>B, NfW-Strccl-txjuarr. DAYS AND NIGHTS ^S A L M N FISHING THE TWEED; WITH A suoar account op THE NATURAL HISTORY AND HABITS OF THE SALMON. BY WILLIAM SCROPE, ESQ. F.L.S. AUTHOR OF "the ART OF DEEU STALKING." " Rura mihi, et rigui placeant in vallibus amnes." — Virgil. Georg. lib. ii. WITH ILLUSTRATIONS. SECOND EDITION. LONDON: JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET. 1854. *• Let them that list, these pastimes still pursue, And on such pleasing fancies feed their fill, — So I the fields and meadows green may view, And daily by fresh rivers walk at will Among the daisies, and the violets blue, lied hyacinth, and yellow daffodil, Purple Narcissus like the morning rays. Pale gander-grass, and azure culver-keyes." J. Davoks. TO THE LORD P L AV A R T TI Srijr fnTIfitoing 19agr^ arc tiT^rrtftrtf, IN UEMEMBRAKCF, OF THE HAPPY DAYS SPENT IN UIS COMPANrON'SUIP OX THE BANKS OF THE TWEED, AND THE SOCIAL INTERCOURSE ENJOYED FOR SO MANY YEARS AT MERTOITN, BY HIS SINCERE AND FAITHFUL FRIEND, THE AUTHOR. A 4 PREFACE. " I WILL ^vrite a sort of a Book on Fishing," said I to my friend Mr. Lobworm ; when a fresh breeze from the gentle south swept over the meadows, " stealing and giving odours," and re- minded me of the many calm and pleasant hours I had spent by the margin of some crystal stream. " You really had better do no such thing," replied Lob. — He was a man of few words. " Your very polite reason, if you please?" " Why the subject is utterly exhausted ; ninety- nine books have been written upon it already, and no man was ever the wiser for any one of them, although many are clever and entertaining, and moreover abound in excellent instructions." " Hold! you forget dear old Izaak," said I, " whose dainty and primitive work, the emana- tion of a beautiful mind, has made many a man both wiser and better; for it is dictated through- out by that wisdom of which it is written, ' Her ways are ways of pleasantness, and all her paths are peace.' " PREFACE. " Tliercfbrc it is," replied Lobworm, " that I would have you by all means to refrain : that book will always stand unrivalled and unap- proachable. Excuse me, but ' ex quovis ligno non fit Mercurius.' " " Nay, nay, you cannot for a moment imagine that I shall attempt such a flight as that. I have read of Icarus, and also of the Ulm Tailor, who on the first trial of his patent wings fell into the Danube, instead of pitching upon the opposite bank ; so, as I cannot touch the summits, I must perforce be content to creep on level lands, — ' timidus procellai : ' — mine shall be a work quite of another character." " There is not the least doubt of that, I think," said Mr. Lobworm. " Know likewise," continued he (I never knew him so loquacious or so disagreeable before), — " know likemse, to thy discomfort, nay, to thy utter confusion, that a book has lately appeared yclept ' The Rod and the Gun,' so amusingly written, and so complete in all its parts, that there is not the least occasion for you to burthen Mr. INIurray's shelves "vvith stale precepts that no one will attend to." " Pretty discouraging that, most certainly," I responded. " And then we have ' Salmonia,' which is, or ought to be, a settler too ; and also a scientific work by ^Iv. Colquhoun, who touches PREFACE. XI deftly on the subject. But I tell you this, Sir Oracle, that although I see a hundred good reasons why I should abandon my design, yet I am resolved to persist: it is my destiny — that is a classical reason. You know that, to the great edification of our youth, the pious -^neas gives no better reason for the hundred rascally and much admired things he was in the habit of executing in his expedition to Latium. " I only hope the public will be so good as not to be discerning ; because if they are, I shall have you, my most tender and amiable friend, eternally dinging in my ears, ' There, did not I tell you so ? But you would not be ruled by me, so you must take the consequences.' " At the end of this colloquy, and when left alone, I began to reflect a little ; and although at first I could not help thinking my gentleman somewhat hasty, yet I came to the conclusion that he was partly, if not entirety, in the right. So I began to listen a little to reason, and con- tracted my plan, resolving to treat on Salmon Fishing alone, as it is practised in the Tiveed ; for although various authors have written some pages on the sport, yet I am not aware that any one has as yet gone far into the subject, or given any precepts, or treated of the various methods available to the sportsman of killing these I'KF.FACE. valuable animals in the rod-Usher's part of a river throughout tke triiole of the lawful season. This I have attempted to do in the folloAving pages, having had more than twenty years' practice in that border river alone, above twelve miles of which I rented at different periods. To the Tiveed I have confined myself ; and I beg my readers to observe, that my remarks and instructions are meant to apply to that river alone ; and consequently that I am not account- able for Avhat salmon choose to do in other waters, and for the different means that people may employ for catching them there. Deer-stalking and salmon-fishing are at the head of field and river sports: having written what has been very generously received upon the first and best of these subjects, I have been encouraged to take up the other. This I have done the more readily, as I have been fortunate enough to bring to my aid the talents of artists, who are amongst the most eminent in their various departments that this country can boast of. I must not, however, impute the landscape part to them : this it was unfortunately ne- cessary that some one should undertake who was acquainted with the scenery, and I must hold myself in a great measure responsible for such portion of the plates. PREFACE. Xlll It will be seen that in the letter-press I have attempted little more than to give a correct and faithfnl account of the manner and spirit in which the sport of salmon fishing is carried on in various ways where the scene is laid, and to bring before the sportsman the characters of such people as he is likely to fall in with in his excursions. Among those whom 1 have taken this liberty with, as the type of his class, will be found the late Tom Purdie, Sir Walter Scott's faithful right-hand man, well known to the readers of Mr. Lockhart's delightful Biography, and the genuine parent of the stories here attributed to him. Since the following pages have been printed, Mr. Yarrell has put into my hands " The Annals and Magazine of Natural History for Feb. 1843," containing an account of IMr. Young's experiments on the growth of salmon. I have inserted an extract in the Appendix, for the benefit of those who are interested in the subject. I hope I am correct in saying that, judging from the outline, my statements will agree with Mr. Young's experiments. This, however, -s\all be more accurately seen when the Proceedings of the Royal Society of Edinburgh are published. Belgrave Square, April. 1843. ERRATA. Page 24, line 1%for " some had," read "in some it bad." 108, line 21, omit " &c." 120, line 4, /or "griped," read "gripped." 130, line 23, /or " reels," read " reel." 194, line "i^^for " thence," read " home." CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. Citizen anglers. — INIi'. Pooley. — Mr. John Poplin. — Scientific angler. — Self-complacent angler. — Harry Otter - Page 1 CHAP. n. Salmonidse. — The common salmon. — His powers of swimming and leaping. — Method of spawning. — Habits. — Passage to the sea. — Letter from the author to Mr. Kennedy respecting the parr. — The peciiliar formation of its eyes, similar to that of a salmon. — JVIr. Shaw's experiments. — Passage of the smolts to the sea. — Gilses. — Destruction of salmon fry. — Injurious effects of heavy spates. — Tame salmon. — Change of colour in fish. — Dr. Stark's experiments. — Proceedings at the Literary and Philosophical Society of St. Andrew's. — Seasons of various rivers. — Cairn net. — The salmon trout. — The grey, or bull trout. — Severe contest with him. — St. Kentigern . _ ■ . 8 CHAP. ni. Harry Otter. — Childish incident — Martha's eloquence. — The coy Phyllis. — Self-devotion of a fish. — Feats of Master Harry. — The pet basket. — Encounter with a duck. — An idle scamp. — " I saw young Harry with his beaver off" - - - 70 CHAP IV. Murderous fish. — Hypocritical fish. — Curious predicament. — A cat fish. — Facetious whale. — Harry Otter pastoral. — Purchase of horses of dissenting opinions. — The illustrious Higginbotham. — A five pounder. — Trout not a fish. — Dumb-foundered — Melrose. — Waxing of the water. — Walter the Bold. — The Eildon Hills 82 CONTENTS. CHAP. V Course of the Tweed. — Abbotsfoid. — A (.hallenge. — Higgiu- bothaiu broke. — Au ill-natured (wist. — A ponderous salmon. — A proper mess. — Cut and drowned. — Agreeable wading bj a corpulent gentleman. — A damp gentleman, and lata! effects of wading Tage 101 CHAP. VI. Salmon lines. — A lucky cast. — Disordered tackle. — Triumphant notwithstanding. — New construction of a salmon reel. — Salmon flies. — The metropolitan fly. — Powdered lawyers. — Descrip- tion, and coloured engraving of flies — A worthy person em- barrassed. — Vanishing of a line sea-ward. — Mathematical angling. — liaison demonstrative. — Salmon taken by surprise. — Tom Purdie. — Salmon casting his cantrips. — Robin Hope. — Novel method of fishing. — Discoloured state of the Mater. — A very confident friend and his mishap. — A gudgeon hunter. — Fertile imagination of an angler. — Enormous pike with splendid eyes. — A discomfiture. — Linn of Campsie, and voyage down the Tay in a high flood 115 CHAP. VII. An angler entranced — Absence of mind. — Cow versus fish. — View-taking, and landscape painting. — Claude Lorraine and Salvator Rosa. — Poussin. — The grey scull. — Roslin. — Pure genius. — Twos and threes. — A voracious salmon. — Melrose Bridge and the Cauld Pool. — The coup de grace. — Monstrum horrendum. — Duncan Grant. — Rob of the Troughs clean dune out. — Rob at bay. — Rob breaks the bay - - 159 CHAP. VIII. Glamour. — Michael Scott. — Michael's imp — 'I'liomas of Ercil- doune. — Imperfect incantation. — The imp victorious - 182 CHAP. IX Conscientious water bailifl". — Black fishers. — River sneak. — A chase. — Granting a favour. — The Souter's retreat. — The clodding leister. — Tom Purdie's devil of a fish. — Heather lights. — An unsonsie callant. — Tom gets a flcg. — " Bleezing up," and peremptory kipper - - - - - 188 CONTENTS. XVll CHAP. X. Sunlight. — Mr Tintern's partiality to one leg. — His pony ahint. Occurrence at Abbotsford. — Sunning. — Net and harpoon. — Voracity of eels. — Tom Purdie's sarcasm. — Mr. Tintern sus- pected of howking tricks. — Trolling. — A curious occurrence. — Harling. — Bait fishing. — JVIinnow and parr's tail. — Black Meg of Darnwick. — Firing of Meg's tower, and her death. — The leister. — Canting the boat. — A striking incident. — Rake hooks. — Liberal advice . . . - . Page 205 CHAP. XI. The burning. — A night scene, and blazing up. — Tom Purdie diverts himself. — Striking from an eminence. — Tom Purdie gets a repreef from Sir Walter, and his consequent embarrass- ment. — Benign explanation. — Sandy Trummel's mishap. — Brig-end Pool. — Boat sunk. — Michael Scott. — A hint to pro- prietors of rivers. — The otter. — Twae can play at that. — The keeper of the regalia. — The author backs out, and bids fare- well 235 LIST OF ILLUSTEATIONS. 1. Plate of two young Salmon in the Smolt and Parr state. — • From a picture by E. Cooke, engraved and painted in colours by hand by L. IIaghe. — Nil fuit unqiiam sic impar sibi - - - -To face page 36 2. Plate of a young Salmon in the intervening state. — En- graved and coloured by hand similar to No. 4. - 4G 3. " Cairn Net." — From a drawing by E. Cooke - - 62 4. " Otter devouring a Salmon" — From a drawing by Edwin Landseeh, R. a. - - - - - 70 5. '■'' Mermaids and Fly." — From a drawing by E. Cooke - 131 6. "/ saio young Harry ivith his beaver off." — From a drawing by William Simson - - - - 81 7. '■'■Melrose Abbey and Landscape" - 101" 8. ^'Fisherman and Deer" - - 188 9. "Salmon Reel" - - - 120 10. '■'■Clodding Leister" - - - 196 l\. '■'■Common Leister and Cleik - - 228 From drawings by E. Cooke, The Coloured Lithographs which appealed in the former Edition liave been omitted in the present, to enable the ^Vork to be published at a cheaper rate. DAYS AND NIGHTS SALMON FISHING. CHAPTER I. CITIZEN ANGLEKS. " John Gilpin was a citizen Of credit and renown." Cowper. Salmon fishers do not fall from the clouds all per- fection at once, but generally acquire some skill in river angling for trout, and such like pigmies, before they aspire to the nobler spoil ; — pretty work, indeed, would they make of it, if they began at the wrong end : nemo repente ivat Jishissimus. We will venture to say, that many beginners have been frightened out of their Avits by the sprightliness of a decent-sized trout : would they then have the presumption to encounter a salmon without fortifymg their nerv^es with previous practice of some sort or another ? I would advise each, one and all, to try their hands at something less powerful, before they throw their gauntlet at Entellus. In short, we ourselves, experienced as we are, stand in perfect awe of B 2. IMK. roOLEY. a salmon to this day ; and think it meet to approach him by degrees, by mentioning, in the first instance, the pursuits of less aspiring anglers, and their various grades of ambition. Thus, we shall show the strength of the passion for fishing, even of the most humble description, and by comparison set off the followers of Salmo Salar to the highest possible advantage. We omit giving any particulars of such holiday folk as disturb the puddles in the commons about London, and l)eg to introduce our worthy friend Mr. Pooley, Avho being counter-bound nearly all the year, takes his pastime occasionally on the river Lea. A pedestrian he, and a man of pretty considei'able pretensions. Behold ! he casts aside his domestic garb disdainful, and packs himself up in a shooting jacket, which distinguishes him from the common herd of travellers, and becomes him admirably. Indeed he shows much address in the skilful use of its buttons ; and it is really surprising to see what an effect he produces by fastening the two last in the waist, thereby making the rereward of his person stick out in bold relief; for Mi'. Pooley is a man of a commendable rotundity. The short rod which he trails merrily in his hand, and the basket that irritates the vertebra? of his back, proclaim his high resolve. At early morn he quits the dusky city, with a temporary distaste for the sound of Bow bells, and with pity for such as are doomed to business whilst it is his pleasure to angle. At length, behold him arrived at thy lazy waters, O Lea I With joyous voice he evokes the miller ; orders a dinner, as he is pleased to suppose, of three dishes, the MR. POOLEY. 6 principal one consisting of the fish he is about to catch, with Izaak Walton's instructions for cooking them. The miller generally puts on a somewhat distressing smile on this occasion, as the said dish of fish is rather addressed to the imagination than otherwise — food for the mind alone. Behold him now, seated on a spot which has long borne his name (iJ/;-. Pooley's Seat). The story runs, that he once caught a pike there of five pounds ; but the truth is, that the said pike was actually only two pounds, but he added a pound to its weight every passing year, because he said that the fish would have gained as much had he lived up to the present day of reckoning. This was a mode of calculation that some CACn of his most intimate friends could not assent to, but he was always peremptory on the subject. His person now being fairly disposed on the bank, with his short and comely legs dangling over the weir, he becomes deeply intent upon his neatly painted float. On this his longing eyes are bent. He sees but askance the swallows that flit by him, and the willow that droops over the pool — he sees only his float. By Jupiter, it bobs ! — now is the decisive moment. Prompt and energetic, he gives a scientific jerk, and up comes the light line obedient. Is there the semblance of a fish at the end of it? O no, certainly not. What then made the float move ? Who can say ? Perhaps it was only a delusion of the optics brought on by a san- guine temperament, or a slight ruffle occasioned by the zephyrs that kissed thy Cockney waters, O gently slumbering Lea ! You were excited, Mr. Pooley, you must own, dreadfully excited, — audit well became you to be so, for the moment was awful; but we will leave B 2 4 MK. JOHN POPLIN. you to resume your tranquillity. We grant you our sympathy, but deny you our company. Pass we on to the more ambitious angler, even to our adventurous acquaintance, Mr. John Poplin. He cannot submit to the worm, paste, or float — not he. His skilful arm is practised to wave his rod gracefully, with nothing less at the end of the line than the green granam fly. Reclining on his sofa, and. tinted with a slight suffusion of bile, he has seen on one auspicious morn a seductive advertisement, headed " Trout FisliingT With eager pen he responds to A.B. ; pays a guinea for a ticket to enable him to angle for trout during a whole season, in a part of the river Wandle that is strictly preserved. How very cheap ! After pulling about mon- strous fish in his dreams all night he pays his guinea, and drives off to the Elysian fields : there he beholds the whole extent of the fishery lying before him, — a mill- pond full seventy yards long, one side only belonging to the advertiser in right of a small water meadow. The spot seems a favourite one ; for a goodly company of citizens are extended along the bank in line at three feet asunder — a similar number on the oj^posite bank. Now three feet is a liberal allowance, for only two are granted for a soldier standing in close order. With graceful obeisance and skilful tact he apologises, and wedges himself into line ; hooks his neighbour's tackle on the right the very fii'st throw, whilst he on his left hooks his. They remonstrate, and extricate with proper courtesy. Not particularly admiring his position, which he deems crowded, he backs out, quits the ranks, and in evil hour trespasses on the water below. Then SCIENTIFIC ANGLEIi. 5 was thy wrath awakened, O jolly miller ! White in apparel, but rubicund in complexion, you sally forth, portly and irascent : lofty is your language. *^ Who gave you toleration to fish in my mill tail ? " In return, Mr. Miller, you are called an uncivil brute, and you well deserve it ; for, in civility, you should first of all have remonstrated, and, in prudence, should after- wards have endeavoured to exact a handsome fine for the trespass. But you did neither of these ; on the contrary, I am sorry to say, you were personal and un- pleasant, and forcibly deprived our amiable friend Mr. John Poplin of his rod ; so that he returned to London with an accumulation of bile, and scolded his wife, maid, and footboy. Hard was the fate of the caster of the green granam ! Mount we now one step higher, nay, a goodly stride or two ; and let us celebrate the real scientific fly-fisher, to whom fortune has been more propitious. Possessed of ample means, he roves from river to lake, rich in rods of various dimensions, and the joyful possessor of all the flies that have been named or engraved in all the ninety- nine Ijooks that have been published on the art of angling, not forgetting that distinguished fly called the jyrofessor. We have a boundless respect for this young gentleman. We like his custom of roving about. He does not scruple to mount his tilbury, and to flourish his rod over the rivers and lakes of Wales, and to lash also with zeal all the watei's of Westmoreland and Cum- berland. He is not a mere angler, but somewhat of an artist also ; at least he thinlvs so himself. So when the B 3 6 SELF-COMrLACENT ANGLER. sun ritlcs high, and the lake lies hot and motionless, " and the flies make strange streaks, albeit skilfully thi'own, on the mirror-like surface of the water," as that most capital penman, " the organist," has described it, he plants his sketching stool in some shady nook, and, armed at all points with the necessary implements, imagines that he transmits to his canvass a vivid im- pression of what he sees before him. Well skilled to select his subjects, he does not take a general view of the broad expanse, but gets a glimpse of the lake between the bolls of the trees opposed to it in shadow. Proud of his ultra marine, he touches in the distant mountain, and the rugged brae nearer the fore- ground he paints rich and sunny ; nor does he forget those accessories that give interest and character to the scene, — the smoke issuing from the cottage lying in some shady nook, the boat hauled up on the gravelly beach, or the cattle that stand listless on some point of land that juts into the lake. Perhaps, too, some shepherd lies sleeping with his flock around him in a sequestered glade. Thus he paints the images of rural life ; and who happier than himself, when he retires to the clean little inn, and selects the trout for his dinner, giving a cut behind the dorsal fin to descry those of the reddest tint? Self- complacent are his regards when he eyes his ample capture, — beaming are his looks when he contemplates his coloured canvass. It is with pain we take leave of the happy man : we would willingly write his memoirs, but we have a higher duty to perform. We are about to sing of Harry Otter, even of ourselves, doing battle with HAKRY OTTER. 7 the lusty Salmon as we ride on the waves of the Tweed in our little bark, or wade amongst its rapid cataracts. It becomes us first, however, to preface our pages with a short description of the Sahnon itself, as well as of Harry Otter ; and we will begin with the fish, as being the most interestinoc animal of the two. B 4 SALMONIDiE. CHAR 11. " So dainty salmons, clievins tliuiuler-scared, Feast-famous sturgeons, lampreys speckle-starr'd, In the spring season the rough seas foi'sake, And in the rivers thousand pleasures take." Du Bartas. The three species of the genus Salmo Avhich are to be found in the Tweed, and which afford most sport to the angler, are the common Sahnon, or Salmo Salar ; the Grey, or Bull Trout, Salmo Eriox ; and the Salmon Trout, Salmo Trutta. The Salmo Fario also, or connnon Trout, is, or rather used to be, in great abun- dance there ; but of this latter species I do not mean to treat. Although the salmon fisheries are of considerable national importance, affording a great sujiply of food and employment to thousands ; yet, surprising as it may appear, the natural history and habits of the fish itself have almost up to this time been very imperfectly known. Indeed naturalists have been altogether mis- taken as to the ajipcarance of the fry, which at a certain growth they have supposed to be a distinct species of fish ; and had it not been for the skill and diligence of Mr. Shaw, who has demonstrated this their mistake by a series of scientific and interesting ex- periments, they would still have continued in error. SALMON. 9 But not naturalists alone, who are apt to copy their predecessors with somewhat too liberal a faith, but even practical men, who have made their observations from nature, have arrived also at false conclusions. Mr. Yarrell, in the second edition of his beautiful work on British Fishes, has given so ample and so scientific an account of the Salmon, deduced from the late recent and important discoveries, that little remains to be said on its natural history. I shall therefore be as brief on this subject as possible ; adding, however, such remarks on the habits of the three most valuable species of the Salmonidce as my practical acquaintance with the subject may enable me to supply. And, first, for the COMMON SALMON. Salmo Salar. Generic Characters. — " Head smooth, body co- vered with scales ; two dorsal fins, the first supported by rays, the second fleshy and without rays ; teeth on the vomer, both palatine bones, and all the maxillary bones ; branchiostegous rays, varying in number, ge- nerally from ten to twelve, but sometimes unequal on two sides of the head of the same fish." — Yarrell. This splendid fish leaves the sea, and comes up the Tweed at every period of the year in greater or lesser quantities, becoming more abundant in the river as the 10 SALMON. summer advances ; that is, provided sufficient rain falls to swell the water to such an extent as will discolour it, and enable the fish to pass the shallows with ease and security. It travels rapidly ; so that those Salmon which leave the sea, and go up the Tweed on the Saturday night at twelve o'clock, after which time no nets are worked tiU the Sabbath is past, are found and taken on the following Monday near St. Boswell's, — a distance, as the river winds, of about forty miles. This I have frequently ascertained by experience. When the strength of the current in a spate is con- sidered, and also the sinuous course a Salmon must take in order to avoid the strong rapids, this power of swim- ming must be considered as extraordinary. As Salmon are supposed to enter a river merely for the purposes of spawning, and as that process does not take place till September, one cannot well account for their ajipearing in the Tweed and elsewhere so early as February and INIarch, seeing that they lose in weight and condition during their continuance in fresh water. Some think it is to get rid of the sea-louse ; but this supposition must be set aside, when it is known that this insect adheres only to a portion of the newly run fish, which are the best in condition. I think it more probable that they are driven from the coasts near the river by the numerous enemies they encounter there, such as porpoises and seals, which devour them in great quantities. However tliis may be, they remain in the fresh water till the spawning months commence. On the first arrival of the spring Salmon from the sea, they are apt to take up their seats in the rear of a scull SALMON. 1 1 of kelts ; at this early period they are brown in the back in the Tweed, fat, and in high condition. In the cold months they lie in the deep and easy water ; and as the season advances they draw into the principal rough streams, always lying in places where they can be least easily discovered. They are very fond of a stream above a deep pool, into which they can fall back in case of disturbance. They prefer lying upon even rock, or behind large blocks of stone, particularly such as are of a colour similar to themselves. They are not to be found all over the river like Trout, but only in such rough or deep places as I have mentioned ; it is therefore very necessary for a stranger to take out some one with him who is acquainted with the water he means to fish, for there are large continuous portions of almost all salmon rivers where no fish ever take up their seats. It is true that a very practised eye, which is well acquainted with water, needs little assistance ; but there are not many such nice observers. At every swell of the river, unless a very trifling one, the fish move upwards nearer the spawning places : so that no one can reckon upon preserving his particular part of the river, which is the chief reason of the uni- versal destruction of these valuable animals. Previous to a flood, the fish frequently leap out of the water, either for the purpose of filling their air-bladder to make them more buoyant for travelling, or from excitement, or, perhaps, to exercise their powers of ascending heights and cataracts in the course of their journey upwards. Of the nature of these spates, or floods, I will speak hereafter. 12 SALMON. That Salmon will leap a great liclght I have read, and heard asserted contmually ; but even the subdued account which Mr. Yarrell has mentioned, placing their powers of leaping ten or twelve feet perpendicularly, I hold to be beyond the mark. I have frequently watched their endeavours to surmount falls, and I do not think I ever saw a Salmon spring out of the water above five feet perpendicularly. There is a cauld at the mouth of the Leader-water, where it falls into the Tweed, which Salmon never could spring over ; this cauld I have lately had measured most carefully by a mason, and its height varies from five feet and a half to six feet from the level above to the level below it, according as the Tweed, into which the Leader falls, is more or less aifected by the rains. Hundreds of Salmon formerly attempted to spring over this low cauld, but none could ever achieve the leajo ; so that a Salmon in the Leader-water was formerly a thing unheard of. The proprietors of the upper water have made an opening in this cauld of late years, giving the owner of the mill some recompense, so that Salmon now ascend freely. Large fish can spring much higher than small ones ; but their powers are limited or aug- mented according to the depth of Avater they spring from : in shallow water, they have little power of ascension; in deep, they have the most considerable. They rise rapidly from the very bottom to the surface of the water by means of rowing and sculling, as it were, with their fins and tail ; and this powerful impetus bears them up- wards in the air, on the same principle that a few tugs of the oar make a boat shoot onwards after one has ceased to row. It is probably owing to a want of sufficient depth SALMON. 13 in the pool below the Leader-water cauld, that prevented the fish from clearing it ; because I know an instance where Salmon have cleared a cauld of six feet belonging to Lord Sudely, who lately caused it to be measured for my satisfaction, though they were but few out of the numerous fish that attempted it that were able to do so. I conceive, however, that very large fish could leap much higher. Although I think the powers of Salmon to leap perpendicularly have been much overrated, yet I know that they will ascend steep cataracts in a wonderful manner. Mr. Smith of Deanston, in the Carse of Stirling, has invented a sort of stair, by means of Avhich Salmon are enabled to ascend streams in full waters in spite of natural or artificial obstructions. One side of the river under a weir or cauld is separated from the main stream, and intersected by transverse pieces of wood or stone, each of which reaches about two thirds of the width of the gap. There are two ranges of these steps, one on each side, and the steps on one side face the centre of the interval between the steps on the other ; so that the fish ascend from side to side in a zigzag direction, and can rest in their ascent, should they find it necessary. This is a very ingenious contrivance, and it has been constructed on the Teith, near Doune, with complete success. But I conclude it can only come into operation in such floods as raise the water to a higher level than is required for the mill-dam ; and therefore if rude steps of rolling stones were constructed at a portion of the back of the cauld, the end would be answered in a better manner, since the ascent might be made more gradual. 1 4 SALMON. The fish pass every practical)le obstruction till they arrive at their spawning ground, some early, and some late in the season. The sj^awning in the river Tweed continues throughout the autumn, winter, and beginning of spring. It commences about September, and I have caught full roeners as late as May ; but the principal months are December, January, and February. Mr. John Crerar, who was fisherman to the Duke of Atholl for sixty years, and who left behind him some pages in manuscript on the habits of the Salmon, has recorded in them that fish full of mature roe may be caught in the Tay in every month in the year. The fish become weak and wasted before the spawning time, and change in colour. The male loses its silvery hue, and is deeply tinged in the cheeks and body with orange, and is also dappled with red spots, when, in the upper parts of the Tweed, it is sometimes called a " Soldier." The under jaw also becomes longer, and a cartilaginous sub- stance grows from the point of it, and extends upwards till it buries itself in the nose above. In this state the fish is very thin in the back, and altogether much wasted ; but its flesh is sometimes eatable, and at any rate infinitely superior to that of a fish which has newly spawned. The female, when ready to spawn, is dark in colour, and her flesh is soft and worthless. Salmon are led by instinct to select such places for depositing their spawn as are the least likely to be af- fected by the floods. These are the broad ^^arts of the river, where the Avater runs swift and shallow, and has a free passage over an even bed. Here they either select an old spawning place, a sort of trough left in the SALMON. 15 channel, or form a fresh one. They are not fond of working in new loose channels, which would be Kable to be removed by a slight flood, to the destruction of their spawn. The spawning bed is made by the female. Some have fancied that the elongation of the lower jaw in the male, which is somewhat in the form of a crook, is designed by nature to enable him to ex- cavate the spawning trough. Certainly it is difficult to divine what may be the use of tliis very ugly excrescence ; but observation has proved that this idea is a fallacy, and that the male never assists in making the spawning place ; and indeed, if he did so, he could not possibly make use of the elongation in question for that purpose, wliich springs from the lower jaw, and bends inwards towards the throat. When the female first commences making her spawn- ing bed, she generally comes after sunset, and goes off in the morning : she works up the gravel with her snout, her head pointing against the stream, as my fisherman has clearly and unequivocally witnessed, and she arranges the position of the loose gravel with her tail. When this is done, the male makes his appearance in the evenings, according to the usage of the female : he then remains close by her, on the side on which the water is deepest. When the female is in the act of emitting her ova, she turns upon her side, with her face to the male, who never moves. The female runs her snout into the gravel, and forces herself under it as much as she possibly can, when an attentive observer may see the red spawn coming from her. The male in his turn lets his milt go over the spawn ; and this process goes on for some days, more 16 SALMON. or less, according to the size of the fish and consequent quantity of the eggs. During this time, Trout will collect below to devour the spawn that floats down the river ; and numerous Parrs, so called, are always seen about and in the spawn- ing beds, — an explanation of which will be found in the sequel. If a strange male interferes, the original one makes at him, and chases him with great fury, and in these combats they often inflict great injury on each other. John Crerar once had his attention attracted by a great noise of dashing and plunging, at King's Ford in the Tay, and upon looking round he found it was occasioned by the fighting of two Salmon. After a short contest one of them set off; and the water being shallow, Crerar fired at and killed him : he was a male of course, and weighed thirty- two pounds. This occurred in June, 1799. When the female has done spawning, she sets off, and leaves the place. The male remains waiting for another female ; and if none comes in twenty-four hours, he goes away in search of another spawning place. In the spawning beds on the Tweed, great injury is done with the leister, and rake hooks ; and the fishermen, who know how to profit by their cruel slaughter, are in the habit of spearing the male which first comes to the female, leaving the latter as a decoy fish, and killing the other males in succession as they arrive to consort with her. By this barbarous and poaching practice all the largest spawning fish are destroyed, to the great destruction of the river. These foul Salmon are bad and unwholesome food, and used to be sold by the fishermen for about SALMON. 1 7 half a crown the stone, Dutch weight : they were after- wards salted. Trifling as this price is, the fishermen in the upper parts of the Tweed formerly made up the chief part of their rent in this manner ; for there is no law against killing foul fish, except in close time. I have now given a brief account of the Salmon, from his first entry into fresh water till he has spawned. It remains only to trace him back to the sea. When the spawning is finished, the fish become very lank and weak, and fall into deep easy water, where they have not to contend with the current : here, after a time, their strength is recruited, when, as the spring advances, the strongest fish leave the depths and draw into the streams. At this time they become clear in colour, and are comparatively well-made ; but their flesh is soft, and without flavour. They now move down the river by degrees, in their passage to the sea. When they arrive in the deep pools where the water runs evenly, they lie in sculls, and take a rest for some days : here they are caught in great quantities by anglers, as they take the fly and other baits freely. March is usually the best month for this sport, — if, indeed, it can be called sport to kill an animal that is worth a mere ti'ifle, and resists but little. If there are freshes, the- Kelts (for so the females that have spawned are called) quit the Tweed before the month of May, and the Kippers, or male fish, at the same time. Very many do so in March and April, according to the time that they have spawned and regained their powers. In going downwards they are taken about Kelso, or at least they used to be so in my time, with the long net, in pools where they rest, c 18 SALMON. r^ucli as that below Kelso bridge ; but they cannot be caught by the cairn nets, which are so destructive to thcni in ascending. Having now despatched the Salmon to the sea, it re- mains to me to explain what becomes of the spawn, and how and when the young fry arrive at maturity ; and as there have Ijcen various doubts and contradictions on this subject, I thmk it more prudent to lead the reader to a consideration of the following pages, than to make a positi^■e assertion on my own unsupported authority. i\Ir. Shaw's ingenious experiments have lately had a very wide cu'culation ; but still I have thought it pro- per to make a very short abstract of them, as they are of too great importance to be omitted in any publication relating to Salmon. Up to a late period it was universally thought that the spaAvn deposited as above mentioned was matured in a brief time, and that the young fry of the winter grew to six or seven inches long, were silver in colour, and Avent down to the sea in this state with the first floods early in the May of the coming spring. They were then called Smolts. In the summer months there are always multitudes of little fry in every salmon river, which in the Tweed are called Parrs, and have been thought to be a different species from the Salmon. I have formerly held several tiresome arguments, both with practical men and also \\ith naturalists, with an intent to convince them tliat tlicy were one and the same species. The late Mr. James Hogg, the Ettrick Shepherd, was particularly stiff and bristly in opinion against me. But he recanted afterwards, and caused to be published SALMON. 19 in the famed " Maga " an account of experiments made by himself, all tending to confirm my theory. I suppose it would have been better for my credit had I abstained from any colloquy with the said James, which appears not to have been particularly entertaining ; for lately, upon asking my friend Sir Adam Ferguson if he re- collected the circumstance, " Perfectly well," said he, " and it was at your own table ; but I cannot say who had the best of the argument, as I fell asleep soon after it began." But indeed I had not resided long on the banks of the Tweed, before I came to the conclusion that the Parr was not a distinct species, but, as I have said, was actually the young of the Salmon ; and very many years ago, long before Mr. Shaw's experiments, Mr. Kennedy having brought in a bill for the better pre- servation of the salmon fisheries, I wrote to him the following letter, which I transcribe from the first draught, which I preserved : — '' Pavilion, Melrose. « Sir, " Your Salmon Bill being in progress, permit me to have the honour of addressing you on a point that is at present overlooked, and that you will at once per- ceive is of vital unportance to its successful operation. " It is a fact, that whilst the legislature has imposed penalties for the destruction of Smolts or Salmon fry, not only those whose duty it is to put the law in force, but the public, and even fishermen themselves, cannot ascertain what these are at all seasons of the year. On the contrary, for most part of the year they C 2 20 SALMOX. go by the name of Parrs, and are destroyed daily with impunity, and in incredible quantities. Hitherto the Parr and the Smolt have been considered as different species ; but that they are precisely the same, I think may be demonstrated. " The received opinion, and that which the present law of Scotland acts upon, is, that the Salmon fry of the winter and spring congregate and go down to the sea in the jNIay of the same season, and that they are of a pure silver colour, as indeed more or less they are. Now in all salmon rivers Parrs are to be found in abun- dance throughout the summer, and early in the spring ; and in the summer they arc not of a silver colour, but marked with red spots, and are shaded with vertical bars on their sides at intervals. From the appearance of these bars, they are very generally supposed to be of a distinct species from the Smolt. Permit me to give my reasons for entertaining a contrary ojjinion. " After May the large Parrs totally disappear, and such few as may be found afterwards are very small ; but as the summer advances they become larger, and in the spring following the bars and red spots above mentioned gradually die away, and a stronger armour or scale supervenes ; and as that is more or less advanced in growth, the bars and spots are more or less visible. " When they are in this silvery state, that is, when the new scales are perfected, they become what are called Smolts or Salmon fry ; but by removing such new scales, you Avill find the bars and spots of the Parr underneath as clear and vivid as ever. I have there- fore a positive conviction that the Salmon fry, instead SALMON. 21 of falling clown to the sea the same year they are produced, remain in the river, under the name of Parrs, till the year following.* That they increase little in size we cannot be surprised at, as it is universally known that the Salmon himself wastes from the moment he comes into fresh water. " If the Committee make themselves perfectly ac- quainted with the natural history of the Salmon, they will be aware of the peculiar construction of the eye of that fish. Dr. Brewster f has been so obliging as to examine for me the eyes of some Parrs, which I sent him for that purpose ; and replies, * I have examined very carefully the crystalline lenses of the Parr, which I find to be the same with those of the Salmon, which is a strong con- firmation of your opinion.' *' I must add, that these Parrs, as they are called, are never found but in salmon rivers, or in such as have an uninterrupted communication with them ; and that they cannot be the young of the Bull Trout, as the formation of the tail in that fish is wholly different. " When it is considered that trout fishing is enjoyed by every class of people in Scotland, and that, speaking with reference to the river Tweed only and its different tributary streams, hundreds and hundreds of people are fronting daily, and that each person catches several dozen Parrs in a morning, except in that interval between the disappearance of the old fry and the appearance of the new in a forward state, it will be found that the * ]VIr. Shaw has since proved that they remain in fresh water still longer. f Now Sir David Brewster. C 3 22 SALMON. young Salmon (for such I contest they are) so destroyed ■will amount to considerably more than the whole mar- ketable produce of the river. " By your present bill I know not how far the local Scotch Acts may be repealed ; but I take the liberty of suggesting that it would be for the public benefit if the usage of a pout net in close time were made punish- able by a fine. The inhabitants of almost every cottage have these nets, which are taken out under pretence of catching Trout, which no one but a proprietor has a right to do in such a way. I have heard that above a thousand Salmon have been taken in a small sj)ace of the Tweed by these nets during close time. They are most destructive below the backs of caulds, Avhere the fish collect in order to ascend. " I should have mentioned before, that what we call the Parr in the Tweed goes by various other names in the diiferent rivers of Great Britain, Avhicli is a material circumstance to note. "If you are desu'ous of any further information on this subject, I shall most readily give you such as may be in my power. What I have already said is of a nature that cannot make me be suspected of having any private or party view to answer. " I have the honour to be," &c. &c. The above being the first draught, I omitted to put a date to it ; but it was written many years before Mr. Shaw's experiments. For Mr, Kennedy's bill, to which my letter alludes, was brought in on the loth of April, 1825, and thi'own out on the second reading. SALMON. 23 I received a very obliging answer from that gentleman, the purport of which was to say, that as his bill had foiled, it was not necessary to trouble me any forther on the subject. This letter contains evidence that Sir David Brew- ster's experiments were made previously to its being written ; and when I had thought of publishing, being desirous to know the exact time Avhen they were made, I wrote to Sir David to call liis attention to the subject. His answer, dated 16th of April, 1840, was as follows : " I am pretty sure that my experiments on the struc- ture of the crystalline lens of the Parr, which is iden- tical with that of the Salmon, were made previous to 1828.* I remember well your stating to me that when the silver scales of the young Salmon (which in Rox- burghshire we call Smouts) were carefully rubbed off, the colours of a dai-ker hue which characterise the Parr were invariably and distinctly seen. I think you showed me the experiments, but I am not sure of this. With the view of confirming this your theory, or of over- turning it, I mentioned to you that the fibres of the lens of the salmon," &c. Then foUows the account of liis experiments, as de- tailed a little farther on. Besides the reasons mentioned in the above letter, there were other causes which influenced me in the opinion I had formed ; the two principal of Avhicli were — * The date of Mr. Kennedy's Bill, wMch I have hut just ascer- tained, \)vo\eii that thoy were made iu or before the year 1825; whereas Mr. Shaw's fn-st account of his interesting experiments appeared in the " Xew Edinburgh and Philosophical Journal " for 1836, vol. xxi. p. 99. — eleven years after. C 4 24 SALMON. Firstly, That no one ever saw a clear silver-looking fry below the usual dimensions of those which are ready to go down to the sea ; that is, till the new dress comes over them, and obliterates the distinguishing marks of what is called the Pan*. Secondly, That PaiTs are found above falls which Salmon can, but they cannot possibly, surmount. A high spate might certainly bring some of these falls more to a level ; but it would be as impossible for a Parr to swim up them in a raging flood, as it would be for the sere leaf that falls into the Avaves to find its passage vipwards. Mr. Shaw, Avho has carefully watched shoals of ^ttr;- (correctly speaking, Smolts)m their descent to the sea, affirms that they pass down the current with the greatest caution, keeping their heads up the stream, and rowing gently with their fins against it, so as to steady themselves and prevent a too rapid descent ; and thus they drop down Ijy degrees, tail foremost, precisely in the same manner that we manage a boat in the Tw^eed Avhen descending the rapids. When the fry Avere congregating in May I caught these little fish in various stages of the growth of the new scale. Some had supervened so as to obliterate the bars and spots entirely, when their sides became silver ; in others they were partially obliterated, so as to leave only a mere stain of colour ; whilst some retained them almost entire. As I caught these fry I sent them up to Sir David Brewster, who was then residing at his beautiful place on the banks of the Tweed. After a careful examination he could find no distinction in the structure of the organs between any of these little creatures, however differing in colour. SALMON. 25 The Salmon has a peculiar formation of the eye, the crystalline lens having the fibres of Avhicli it is composed arranged as in the annexed sketch A, the line m n being horizontal on one side, and vertical on the other ; whereas in many of the Trout species the fibres are arranged as at C, crossing one another, or rather meeting at two opposite jjoles, lil^e the meridians of a globe, the line joining the two poles being the axis of vision of the eye. " After examining the lenses of the Parr you sent me," says Sir David Brewster in a letter now before me, " I found the structure to be exactly the same as that of the Salmo7i. I have frequently had occasion to mention the proofs that you gave me of the identity of the Parr with the Salmon, and to mention my own experiments on the lenses as confirmatory of your opinion that the Parr and the Salmon are one and the same species." Salmon begin spawning as early as September, and continue to do so throughout the winter months ; De- cember, January, and February being the principal ones for that operation. They continue on the spawning- ground, or Hade, as it is termed in Scotland, also during the spring months, though in diminished quantities. I myself have caught full roeners, as they are called, in the month of May in the Tweed. Now we know from the 26 SALMON. proof of experiments that have been made by various persons, that the spawn of the Sahnon continues im- bedJed in the gravel from ninety to one hundred and fifteen days, according to the temperature of the water, before it vivifies ; and indeed remains there some weeks after its exclusion from the egg. Mr. Shaw has stated the exact time of this latter period to be fifteen days ; at the end of which time, says he, the egg which was attached to its abdomen, from which it derived its nourishment, " contracted and disappeared ; the fin or tadpole-like fringe also divided itself into the dorsal, adipose, and anal fins, all of which then became per- fectly developed ; the little transverse bars, which for a period of two years characterise it as a Parr, also made their appearance ; so that a period of at least 140 days is required to perfect this little fish, which even then measured little more than one inch in length." The above not being matter of conjecture, but having been demonstrated by experiment, how by any possi- bility can the old doctrine be true, that the fry which go to sea about the first or second week in May, six or seven inches long, can be the spawn of the winter immediately preceding it ? And what and where are the young of the Sahnon all the summer, if they are not indeed Parr ; for no silver-coloured fry are at that time to be seen in the river ? I must add also, that it is incumbent upon those naturalists who assert that tlie Parr is a distinct species, to prove that it is so from comparative anatomy. But they have not been able to do this ; on the contrary, as far as I can learn, they confess tliey have discovered no variation of organic sti'ucturc. SALMON. 27 I have lieard it objected that the growth of the Sahiion being very rapid, it seems out of the order of nature to suppose that a creatiu'e should remain so long in fresh water with so little increase of size. But Salmon never grow in fresh water ; on the contrary, they begin to waste from the moment they enter a river, whether they arc clean at that i:)eriod, or forward in spawning. Besides, as the full latitude of the spawning season endures for six months, some of the fry, acknowledged by all to be Smolts, must be six months older than others, and yet when they congregate to go to sea they will all be found to be nearly of the same size. Now if the fiy, confessed by all to be Smolts, or the young of the Salmon, do not increase during so many months, why should it be objected that the PaiT is not the young of the Salmon on the same account ? These and other arguments have occurred to me from time to time. All reasoning, however, on tliis subject is noAV become superfluous ; Mr. John Shaw of Drum- lanrig having demonstrated, by a number of careful and scientific experiments, that the Parr is actually the young of the Salmon. His first paper, announcing this important fact, was published in the " Edinburgh New Philosophical Journal " for July, 1836, vol. xxi. page 99. His second was read before the Royal Society of Edin- burgh on the 18th of December, 1837, and was published in the " Edinburgh New Philosophical Journal " for January, 1838, vol. xxiv. page 165. His third and con- cluding communication, by far the most interesting, and which has been lately received by the Royal Society of Edinburgh, contains a continuance and confirmation 28 SALMON. of the results of the experiments mentioned in the two first papers above alluded to, together with the very ex- traordinary fact, that the milt of a Parr eighteen months old, and only weighing an ounce and a half, is capable of impregnating the ova of a full-grown Salmon. Before proceeding to make the experiments related in his last communication, he made three ponds, the banks so raised, and constructed otherwise in such a manner, that it was impossible for the young fish to escape, or for any other fish to have access to them. Accurate drawings and descriptions of these ponds are given in his printed pages, now before me, which he was so oblig- ing as to present me with. " Being thus prepared," says Mr. Shaw (alluding to the construction of his ponds), " with every means of carrying my experiments into practice, I proceeded to the river Nith on the 4t]i of January, 1837, and readily discovered a pair of adult Salmon engaged in depositing their spawn. They were in a situation easily accessible, the water being of such a depth as to admit of my net being employed with certain success." The fish were accordingly captured by means of a hoop net. The ova were then pressed with the hand from the body of the female, and impregnated in the same manner by the milt of the male, and the spawn in this state was transferred to a private pond previously prepared for its reception. That there might be no doubt as to the species, the skins of the parent Salmon were kept, and may be seen at any time. On the 28th of April, 114 days after impregnation, the young Salmon were excluded from the egg, which was not the case when they were visited the preceding SALMON. 29 day. On the 24th of May, twenty-seven days after being hatched, the young fish had consumed the yolk which remains attached to the lower part of the body, and which serves him for nourishment, and the charac- teristic bars of the Parr had become distincthj visible. From a deposition of mud, as Mr. Shaw apprehends, all these fry, except one individual, were found dead at the bottom of the ponds, so that there was no opportunity of watching their future progress ; but an ingenious experi- ment was made, which proved that an increased tempe- rature hastened the development of the infant fish. But Ave shall see that Mr. Shaw was too indefatigable to be daunted by such an untoward accident, and that he persevered in his experiments, till liis efforts were rewarded by complete success. On the 27th of January, 1837, he captured a male fish of sixteen pounds, and a female of eight, and expressed the ova of the female and impregnated it with the milt of the male in the manner above related, and dcjiosited the spawn in this state in a private pond as before, and to Avhicli no fish could by possibility have access. "On the 21st of March," says Mr. Shaw (that is, fifty-four days after impregnation), "the embryo fish were visible to the naked eye. On the 7th of May (101 days after impregnation), they had burst the envelope, and were to be found amongst the shingle of the stream. The temperature of the water was at this time 43°, and of the atmosphere 45°; and it is this brood Avliich I have now had an opportimity of watching continuously for a length of time, that is, for more than the entire period which was requu'ed to elapse 30 SALMON. from their exclusion from the cgp^, until their assumption of those characters which distinguish the undoubted Salmon fry." Mr. Shaw then proceeds to describe the size and ap- pearance of the Salmon fry at different periods of their age, accompanied with several very accurate and well- executed engravings illustrating the text. " One of these is a specimen two years old, when it has assumed its mi- gratory dress, and measures about six inches and a half, being about the average size of the brood." Two years, — mark this, — and only six inches and a half long ! It then goes to the sea the first floods in May, and returns in two or three months, as it may happen, when it is called a Gilse, and is increased to the size of from four to seven pounds, and indeed very considerably more, being larger or smaller in proportion to the time it has re- mained in the sea. A second visit to the sea gives it another increase, when it returns to the river as a Salmon. This appears so wonderful and extraordinary a departure from the general laws of nature, that it is no wonder that the most scientific men have been misled. But if the Salmon fry attain but to such pigmy growth in fresh water, still less is that element favour- able to adult Salmon, which, as I have elsewhere ob- served, fall off in size and contlition from the moment they enter a river for the purpose of sjiawning. When they have spawned, however, they certainly do mend greatly in condition, or, more correctly speaking, recover from their state of weakness. But to return to ]\Ir. Sha\v. — " The circumstance," SALMON. 31 says he, "of male Parrs with the milt matured, and flowing in profusion from their bodies, being at all times found in company with the adult female Salmon while depositing her spawn in the river, and the female Parrs being in every instance absent, suggested the idea that the males were probably present with the female Salmon at such seasons for sexual purposes. " To demonstrate the fact," he continues, "in January, 1837, 1 took a female Salmon weighing fourteen pounds from the spawning bed, from whence I also took a male Parr weigliing one ounce and a half, with the milt of which I impregnated a quantity of her ova, and placed the whole in a jarivate pond ; where, to my great as- tonishment, the process succeeded in every respect, as it had done with the ova wliich had been impregnated by the adult male Salmon, and exhibited, from the first visible appearance of the embryo fish up to theu- as- suming theu' migratory dress, the utmost health and vigour. " The residt from this experiment was of so startling a nature, that it was not thought prudent to give it publicity till the trial was repeated. It was so, early in the following January, 1838, when two lots of eggs of a Salmon, weighing eighteen pounds, were impregnated with the milt of two male Parrs, and there ensued pre- cisely the same result as before. Again, in December, 1838, four lots of ova from an adult Salmon were im- pregnated with the milt of four Parrs with sunilar success ; and the same Parrs, being afterwards placed in a private pond, assumed the migratory dress in the following May, not in the most minute degree differing 32 SALMON. from what in the Tweed are universally called Smolts, and are acknowledged by all to be the young of the Salmon." All these experiments appear to me to be quite con- clusive, and of a nature to satisfy any one who has not pledged himself to an opposite theory. But if any thing were still wanting, it has been completely sup- plied by an additional experiment, ^vliich clenches the proof. On the 4th of January, 1837, a male Parr, itself the produce of a male Parr and female adult Salmon, was made by expression of the milt to impregnate the eggs of a Salmon weighing twelve pounds ; and for the better secm'ity of the lot the whole was placed in a wooden trough, over which a sheet of fine copper wire-gauze was fixed. The trough was then placed in a stream of water previously prepared for its reception, and the results were precisely of a corresponding nature to those already detailed. Now, if the Parr and the Salmon were distinct species, their produce w^ould be h^^brids, and would not, therefore, breed again, according to the rules of nature established to prevent the confusion of different sjiecies by a conservative law ; but this last and most important experiuient has proved that the produce from the male Parr and female adult Salmon w'Al breed again with the old Salmon, and therefore that such produce are not mules, but of the same sjDCcies with their parents. In a letter to Mr. Shaw, written in the spring (1840), I suggested to him to impregnate the ova of the Salmon with the milt of the common river Trout, imagining SALMON. 33 that the produce, if any, might be Avhat is called in the Tweed the Bull Trout, Avhich exactly resembles in outward appearance and general size what one would conceive such a process would create. I learn from Mr. Shaw's last paper that he has suc- ceeded in breeding the Sea Trout by artificial impreg- nation with their OAvn species ; so that the produce of this cross, that is, of the River Trout and Salmon, cannot be the Sea Trout of the Spey and other rivers, but may possibly prove Avhat I suggested. It is at least a very curious coincidence, that the Tweed, which abounds in common Trout, abounds also in Bull Trout ; whereas in the Annan and the Tay, where Trout are very scarce, the Grey or Bull Trout is very scarce also. But though crosses may be produced by mechanical im- pregnation, it is a matter of grave consideration whether such take place naturally. Trout, however, are ahvays seen near the spawning beds of the other SalmonldcB. " The young of these Sea Trout," says Mr. Shav,-, "at the age of six months bear no very marked re- semblance to the young of the real Salmon, either in the parr or fry state ; and as they advance in age and size the resemblance becomes still slighter. But upon comparing them with the common Trout, the resem- blance is very striking, the general outline of the fish being much less elegant than that of the young Salmon or Parr ; the external markings being also more pecu- liarly those of the Trout species ; so that in the absence of the parent skins, which I carefully j)reserved, it would be a matter of difficulty to determine to which kind of Trout they actually belong." D 34 8AI.MON. Mv. SIkiw jit'tcrwarcls impregnated the ova of the Salmon with the milt of the common River Trout, according to my suggestion ; and in a letter with which he favoured me, dated 26th of April, 1841, he says: — " I am happy to inform you that my experiments with the ova of the common Trout and Salmon have been quite successful, and the young hybrids are now hatched, and in good health." Mr. Shaw will, of course, publish the details of his late expei'iments, and thus add to the obligations which those who are interested in this sub- ject already owe him. I will only add, that his papers arc written Avith such candour, and all his experiments conducted with such care and al)ility, and so often repeated with similar results, without any effort or intention to make tliem bend to a favourite theory, that every one, I think, who reads his pages, must consider that the Parr and the Salmon are of the same species, and that the question is so far set at rest for ever. To sum up, — it appears that the young fry had burst the egg 101 days after impregnation, the temperature of the water being at that time 43°, and the temperature of the atmosphere 45° : a former brood, which died and Avere excluded in a colder temperature, did not come into life till 1 14 days after impregnation. It further appears from a part of Mr. Shaw's publi- cation, Avhich I have not hitherto quoted, but which I have now before me, that the fry, at two months old, are only one inch and a quarter long ; at four months, two inches and a half; and at six months, three inches and a quarter : that makes nine months and eight days SALMON. 35 after the impregnation of the spawn. At eighteen months old the fry measure six inches in length, and the milt of the male is matured, and can be made to flow from the body freely by the slightest pressure ; but the females of a similar age do not exhibit a corre- sponding appearance as to the maturity of the roe. The male is at this time in the autvimn of his second year, and lies about and in the spawning beds of the large Salmon, where he impregnates the ova. The following spring he is about seven inches and a half long, Avhen beautiful silver scales grow over the spots and bars which have characterised him up to this period; and the majority of the breed then congregate, and go to sea with the first floods in May. In the latter end of April, 1842, Mr. Shaw obligingly sent me two parcels of the Salmon fry, which arrived in good condition ; and although not so glossy as when first captured, were made brighter in appearance by the appli- cation of water. I carried them immediately to Barnes, the residence of Mr. Edward Cooke ; and having selected the most silvery amongst them, I begged him to paint it as faithfully as possible ; and after he had so done I desired that, during my absence, he would remove the scales from the upper half of the same fish, and paint it again as it shovild appear after such removal. The result Avill be seen in the accompanying lithograph, with the execution of which I did not at all interfere. It proves what has been asserted as to change of outward appearance. All the fry, however, which go to sea at this period, D 2 36 SALMON. have not their silver scales perfected ; but many have the bars and spots faintly indicated, as rej)resented in the lithograph (No. 3.) introduced a few pages forward, — another fish selected from the same lot ; and although the majority of these little emigrants go to the sea in large masses about the first swells of the river in May, yet I have no doubt but that some are continually going down to the salt water in every month of the year, — not with their silver scales on, but in the parr state. I say not with their silver scales, because no clear Smolt is ever seen in the Tweed during the summer and au- tumnal months. As the spawning season in the Tweed extends over a period of six months, some of the fry must be necessarily some months older than others, — a circumstance Avhich favours my supposition, that they are constantly descending to the sea; and it is only a supposition, as I have no proof of the fact, and have never heard it suggested by any one. But if I should be right, it will clear up some things that cannot well be accounted for in any other mode. For instance, in the month oi March, 1841, Mr. Yarrell infoi'ms me that he found a young Salmon in the London market, and which he has preserved in spirits, measuring only fifteen inches long, and weighing only fifteen ounces. And again, another the following April, sixteen and a half inches long, weighing twenty-four ounces. Now, one of these appeared two months and the other a month before the usual time when the fry congregate. Ac- cording to the received doctrine, therefore, these ani- mals were two of the migration of the i)receding year ; SALMON. 37 and thus it must necessarily follow that they remained in salt water, one ten and the other eleven months, with an increase of growth so small as to be irreconcilal)le with the proof we have of the growth of the Gilse and Salmon during their residence in salt water. Having now sent these tiresome little creatures to sea, it remains to me to trace their progress till they become Salmon. A few, but a very few of these Smolts, return from the sea to the Tweed as early as the month of May ; that is, during the same month in which the general emi- gration takes place : they then weigh from a pound to two pounds each, and are long and thin, and very forked in the tail. They keep on ascending the river during the summer months, the new-comers increasing afterwards about a pound and a half a month on an average, but much less in their very yovuig state. The most plentiful season in the Tweed, if there is a flood, is about St. Boswell's Fair, namely, the 18th of July, at which period they weigh from four to six pounds ; and those which leave the salt for the fresh Avater at the end of Septem- ber, and during the month of Octoljer, sometimes come up the river of the weight of ten and eleven pounds, and even more. All these fish are known in the North by the name of Gilses, but by the London fishmongers are ge- nerally, I believe, called Salmon Peel. Some of them are much larger than small Salmon ; but l)y the term Gilse I mean young Salmon that have only been once to sea. They are easily distinguished from Salmon by their countenance and less plump appearance, and particularly D 3 38 SALMON. by the diminished size of the part of the body next to the tail, which also is more forked than that of the Salmon. They remain in fresh water all the autumn and winter, and spawn at the same time Avith the Salmon, and in the manner Avhich I have already described. They return also to sea in the spring with the Salmon. It seems worthy of remark, that Salmon are oftentimes smaller than moderate-sized Gilse ; but although such Gilse have only been once to sea, yet the period they have remained there must have exceeded the two short visits made by the small Salmon, and hence their superiority of size. When these fish return to the river from their second visit to the sea, they arc called Salmon, and are greatly altered in their shape and appearance ; the body is more full, and the tail less forked, and their countenance assumes a diiferent aspect. It has formerly been suggested that the Gilse was a separate species from the Salmon ; but they have been proved to be one and the same by very conclusive testi- mony. Many years ago, when I was on the Tweed, two were put in a salt pond by Mr. Beriy : one of them was found dead, and supposed to have killed himself by rushing against a stake ; the other Avas taken out some time afterwards a complete Salmon. But I shall men- tion a recent experiment, made by a tacksman on the Duke of Sutherland's salmon fishings on the river Shin. In the course of February and March, 1841, he took a considerable number of Gilses, and marked them with wire in various places sufficiently eflficacious to be again SALMON. 39 recognised. Of these, ten were retaken in the course of the months of June and July following, by which time they had assumed the size and all the distinctive marks of the genuine Salmon. The following table shows when each was taken, and its weight at that time, and its increased weight when recaptured. In addition to the fact which it establishes of the identity of the Gilse with the Salmon, it shows also how rapid the growth of the Gilse is in liis process of becoming a Salmon : ■ — When marked. When retaken. Weight of Gilse. Weight of Salmon. lbs. lbs. February 18 June 23 4 9 18 25 4 11 18 25 4 'J 18 25 4 10 18 27 4 13 18 28 4 10 March 4 July 1 4 12 4 1 4 14 4 10 12 18 4 27 4 12 The above disparity of growth is easily accounted for, since it is not probable that these fish, which were caught and returned to the river in February, went down to the sea before March, if, indeed, so early : of course they would not increase in growth in fresh water, though they would mend somewhat in weight after their weak spawning state. Setting these, therefore, aside, it ap- pears that the growth of the last four fish averaged two pounds each per month when they were at sea ; and if they remained in the river after the 4th of Marcli, as it D 4 40 SALMON. is reasonable to suppose they did, then their growth must have been 2>roportionally greater. For the scientific and successful experiments of Mr. Shaw, the Keith medal was awarded to him for the biennial period of 1838 and 1839: it is of gold, and of the intrinsic value of sixty guineas. The importance of his proof is immense ; for the Parrs not having been before considered to be young Salmon, have not been hitherto protected by the law beyond the short period in which they assume their silver dress, and thus have been killed by hundreds of thousands, by the multitude of boys and men who angle in the various tributary burns and rivers that pour their waters into the Tweed. Mr. John Wilson says, in his evidence before the Select Committee, taken in 1824 — " I have seen from my own w^indow upwards of seventy or eighty people angling within the distance of half a mile on the Tweed." Then there is the Tiviot ; the Adder, comprising the A^Hiite Adder and Black Adder ; the Till, the Eden, the Kale, the Oxnam, the Jed, the Ale, the Rvile, the Slitrig, the Gala, the Carter, the Borthwick, the Leader, the Ettrick, the Yarrow, the Lyne, the Eddlestone, the Manor, the Quhair, with many smaller burns and mountain streams. In floods Salmons enter and spawn in most of these rivers, if not in all of them ; at the subsiding of the waters some of tlieni fall back, and some are left nearly dry, and easily captured. It is ordained by nature that the Parr should in these cases impregnate such ova as have been deposited, perhaps because he is not so easily discovered, or such an object SALMON. 41 of attraction as a Salmon. A^^iat an ample space the above streams present for the destruction of the fry ! And not only are they killed by the rod, each urchin, perhaps, taking eight or ten dozen a day, but by various other means in a wholesale manner. Mr. William Laidlaw *, a gentleman mentioned with so much merited praise in the best biographical work extant, perhaps, who formerly lay under the general misapprehension regarding the Parr, writes to me as follows : — " So great was the number of Pan's in the rivulet of Douglas Burn, that I have seen five dozen taken out of one small pool with aid of a pair of old blankets ; and I and my playfellows, when boys, have committed great havoc by damming up one of the streams, where the rivulet happened to divide into two, and laying the other as dry as we could. The Parrs were so numerous, that we used to make the water Avhite with the milt of those we killed. When the water was lowering, the poor creatures, instead of swunming downwards, where they would have had a chance of safety, all kept sicat- tering upwards, and we actually killed them by hundreds. But a fact, which I could not account for, was this, — namely, that they appeared to come up the rivulet during the early part of the summer only ; but after the month of September there were very few to be seen, and not any in October ; and when this discovery relative * I am greatly indebted to tliis gentleman for his communi- cations I'especting T. Purdie. 42 SALMON. to the Parr was first made, and I think it was from yourself I had it twenty years ago, I used to notice that there were scarcely any Parrs in the Tweed during the winter months." So far INIr. Laidlaw. The disappearance of the Parrs from the burns is easily accounted for. They would naturally avoid the cold shallow rivulets, and fall into the deep and warmer water of the Tweed during the Avinter months, where they could not be well discovered, or be so subject to the action of torrents. Besides the destruction of the fry in this and similar modes, we must add the thousands that are illegally taken at mill-dams, and the injury which the long net occasions in sweeping over the sf)awning beds. In the evidence taken before a Committee of the House of Commons in 1824 or 1825, there was an attempt to prove that no harm could be done in this latter manner, as there was no weight, but only a rope attached at the bottom of the net. This is very true ; but the rope itself is sufficiently heavy to sink to the bottom, and disturb the gravel of the spawning beds, which, being newly raked up, and put together by the Salmon, must be easily displaced. It is fair, however, to observe, that the long net is not used in the generality of such places as fish com- monly spawn in. To these sweeping modes of destruction we must add the great havoc committed by the eels and trout, which devour the spawn ; and when avc consider the peculiar powers and habits of the eel, a fish most abundant in the Tweed, we must at once see that a ruinous devastation SALMON. 43 is occasioned by these creatures, which bore thi'ough the gravel. Strongly, however, as all these causes operate, there is one more destructive than all of them put together ; namely, the effect of the furious spates wliich are continually taking place in the Tweed, and which put the channel in motion, and often sweep away the spawning beds altogether. Before the hills were so well drained as at present, this was not so much the case ; as the mosses gave out the water gradually, and the river continued full for a long time, to the great solace of the rod fisher. But now every hill is scored with little rills which fall into the burns, which suddenly become rapid torrents and swell the main river, which dashes down to the ocean with tremendous violence. Amidst the great din, you may hear the rattling of the channel stones, as they are borne downwards. Banks are torn away ; new deeps are hollowed out, and old ones filled up ; so that great changes continually take place in the bed of the river either for the better or the worse. When we contemplate these things, we must at once acknowledge the vast importance of Mr. Shaw's experi- ments; for if ponds were constructed up the Tweed at the general expense, after the model of those made by him, all these evils would be avoided. The fry might be produced in any quantities by artificial im- pregnation ; be preserved, and turned into the great river at the proper period of migration. There might at first be some difficulty in procuring food for them ; but this would easily be got over. At a very small expense. 44 SALMON. and with a few adult Salmon, more fry may be sent to sea annually than the whole jiroduce of the river at present amounts to, after having encountered the sweej}- ing perils I have mentioned. Proprietors should call meetings for this purpose ; and Parrs, hitherto so called, should be protected by law. Let all who liave an interest in the river consider the wisdom of mutual accommodation. The proprietors of the lower part of the river are dependent on the upper ones for the protection of the sjiawning fish and the fry ; and they on their part depend upon the lower ones for the strict adherence to the weekly close time. I think this method of artificial impregnation would prove somewhat more successful than the method said to be adopted by the Chinese, which, for the better enlightening of barbaric nations, I will transmit to pos- terity, from the authority of " The English Chronicle " of the 25th July, 1839: — " The Chinese have taken a fancy to hatch fish under fowls. For this purpose they collect from rivers and ponds the gelatinous matter which contains the eggs of fish, put it into vessels, and sell it to the proprietors of ponds. AVlien the hatching season arrives, a fowl's egg is emptied of its usual contents, and this gela- tinous matter is put in. The entrance is hermetically sealed, and the egg is then put under a hen. After some days it is opened, and placed in a vessel of Avater heated by the sun ; it is kept in the rays imtil the little fish become strong' enouo;h to bear the external temperature." Not to derogate from the ingenuity of the celestial SALMON. 45 nation, I liave no doubt but that fowls may be dispensed with, and that a river may be stocked with any sort of common fish by transmitting the ova and milt amalga- mated, embedded in gravel, and placed in a vessel filled up with water. One of our best fish, namely Trout, cannot be sent alive even to a moderate distance. It is Avorth while, therefore, to try the experunent. According to a letter published by the late Sir Anthony Carlisle, some- thing nearly approaching to this was done by him in the river Wandle about tliirty years ago. He then im- bedded the ova of the Salmon in the gravel without the milt of the male, leaving the River Trout to impregnate them : he asserts that they did so, and that the river was afterwards full of the fry so produced. It would be interesting to put the Salmon eggs properly impreg- nated with the milt of the same species in one of our best streams, — in the upper parts of the Test, for instance, — and to investigate the result from year to year. Salmon keep on increasing in size till they attain a prodigious weight, even up to eighty -three pounds ; which, says Mr. Yarrell, is the largest fish on record, and was exhibited at Mr. Grove's, fishmonger, in Bond Street, about the season of 1821. This Avas a female fish; and, from the observation of the same eminent authority, those fish Avhich attain a very unusual size have always proved to be females. But the devices and intelligence of fishermen have increased as Salmon have become more marketable, so that few escape all the perils that beset them long enough to gain any considerable size ; and we no more hear, as in days of yore, of a fish being exchanged. 4<; SALMON. weight for weight, ft»r a Iligliland weddcr, and the butcher having to pay. The Sahnon in the Tweed are no longer Lirge ; far from it. During my experience of twenty years I never caught one there above thirty pounds, and very few above twenty. I have remarked that the largest fish are found in the most consider- able rivers, Avhich I attribute to the superior chance of longevity where fish have a greater scope for escape. It appears, from the above facts and observations, that Salmon are not uniform in their habits. Some come into the river many months before they are in a spawning condition, and remain in it till the time comes for depositing their spawn ; getting worse in condition every day they are in fresh water, and thus, as it should seem, doing unnecessary penance all that time. Others, again, remain in the sea, thriving all the while, and do not enter the ri^'crs till their spawn is nearly matured. I have said above that I believe the Smolts singly, or in small quantities, are continually falling down to the sea in nearly if not quite every month of the year, ac- cording to their age ; but that they congregate, and go there in vast shoals in the beginning of the month of ISIay. There seems to be a corresponding habit as to the time of their return ; for they come back at first in small quantities, and periodically in the spring and summer months, and in July they arrive in vast quantities; and this sudden abundance consists, I think, of the fry that have assembled and gone to sea the preceding May, whilst the others that ascend at different periods are the Smolts that go down in the same manner. The accompanying lithograph represents a fry in the SALMON. 47 state when the silver scales just beghi to appear, and soften the bars and spots, — the intermediate state between the summer Parr and Smolt. As to the belief that Salmon return to the same river in which they are bred, I hold it to be a well-founded one. But I think it is not invariably the case ; and that should their native river be too low for their ascent, owing to an extraordinary drought, and continue so when the period of spawning aj)proaclies, most of the Salmon will seek and ascend some other river that may be contiguous to it, whose volume of water is more abundant. Thus many Tweed Salmon have been caught in the Forth, and a very successful fishing there is generally followed by a scarce one in the Tweed. It appears that Salmon will live, and even breed, in fresh water, without ever making a visit to the sea. Mr. Lloyd, in his interesting and entertaining work on the Field Sports of the North of Europe, says, " Near Katrinebergh there is a valuable fishery for Salmon, ten or twelve thousand of these fish being taken annually. These Salmon are bred in a lake, and in consequence of cataracts cannot have access to the sea. They are small in size, and inferior in flavour. The year 1820 furnished 21,817." Mr. George Dormer of Stone Mills, in the parish of Bridport, put a female of the Salmon tribe, which measured twenty inches in length, and was caught by him at his mill-dam, into a small well, where it remained twelve years, and at length died in the year 1842. The well measured only 5 feet by 2 feet 4 inches, and there was only 15 inches depth of water. In this con- 48 SALMON* fined spot she remained up to Saturday the 12t]i of last month, when death put a period to her existence. This fish has been the means of great attraction since the time she was mentioned in the newspapers, which was about five years ago, many persons having come a great distance to see her ; and those who have witnessed her actions (of Avhom there are many in the city of Exeter) can bear tes- timony to the truth of the following statement : — " She would come to the top of the water and take meat off a plate, and would devour a quarter of a pound of lean meat in less time than a man could cat it ; she would also allow Mr. Dormer to take her out of the water, and, when put into it again, she would immediately take meat from his hands, or would even bite the finger if presented to her. Some time since a little girl teased her, by presenting the finger and then withdrawing it, till at last she leaped a considerable height above the water, and caught her by the said finger, which made it bleed profusely : by this leap she threw herself com- pletely out of the water into the court. At one time a young duckling got into the well to solace himself in his favourite element, when she immediately seized him by the leg, and took him under water; but the timely interference of Mr. Dormer prevented any further mischief than making a cripple of the young duck. At another time a full-grown drake api)roached the well, and put in his head to take a draught of the water, when Mrs. Fish, seeing a trespasser on her pre- mises, immediately seized the intruder by the bill, and a desperate struggle ensued, which at last ended in the release of INIr. Drake from the grasp of JMrs. Fish, and SALMON. 49 no sooner freed than Mr. Drake flew off in the greatest consternation and affright ; since which time to this day he has not been seen to approach the well, and it is with great difficnlty he can be brought within sight of it. This fish lay in a dormant state for five months in the year, during which time she would eat nothing, and was likewise very shy."* That Sahnon and some other fish assume in some de- gree the colour of the channel they lie upon, from what- ever cause, is a circumstance pretty generally achnitted by those who have paid any attention to the subject ; and tliis, perhaps, is the reason why fishermen tell you that they can distinguish the Sahnon of one river from those of another contiguous to it. Indeed, I myself could easily distinguish the Isla from the Tay Salmon by their colours, when I rented fisheries on both those rivers. This fact I thought so curious, that I had some corre- spondence witli my eminent friend Sir David Brewster on the subject ; and at the Literary and Philosophical Society of St. Andrew's, Dr. Gillespie read the following paper entitled " Recollections of the Habits, Colom-s, and Sufterings of Fishes." " ' My chief experience is with trouts, — such as are found in our mountain lakes and streams ; and it is mainly to these that my few recollections refer. Trouts seem to have a generic tyj^e, comprehending several apj)arently different species ; which difference, however, in many cases, disappears when the circumstances under which they are viewed are the same. I know a locality " * This account seems to have been sent to a Devonshire news- paper by INIr. Dormer himself, or some of his family. E 50 ClIANCiE OF COLOUR IN FISH. in Dumfries-shire, amidst the hills of Queensbery, where three mountain streams, all of different character, meet — the one proceeding from a moss ; the other running over a clear channelly bed ; and the third, from its clayey banks and bottoms, exhibiting a milk-and-water aspect, like the ' flavns Tiberis ' (or Albula) of Italy. Now the trouts in all these streams were of the same generic type; but differed, notwithstanding, in exter- nal appearance or colour. The moss race were of the Roderick Dhu tint — aspect grim and swarthy : the clear channel i:)roduced those of a brightly spotted appearance ; and the clay bottom exhibited a correspondingly bluish race. Now, you might convert the blue fish into bright, and the bright again into black, by merely transferring them into the corresponding streams. This often took place, more or less, after what is called a thunder plump, which falls partially, and is quite local. I have seen one of these streams overflowing its banks, and carrying all before it, whilst its two mountain sisters remained calm and unmoved. Upon the ebbing of this partial flood, the trouts in the two conjoining streams immediately rush in quest of food (particularly after a long drought) into the other ; and, in less time than any one who has not marked the fact could believe, they all become of the same appearance. Upon returning again into their native waters, they reassume their former colour. Fill your basket with fish from all the three streams, and in a little while that part of the bodies which presses against the others will exhibit the same appearance, whilst the other j)arts will remain as before ; and hence the clouded aspect they exhibit. I once CHANGE OF COLOUR IN FISH. 51 threw a trout, by accident, from a clear channel stream over my head into a peat-moss pool behind me, which had no communication with the running water; and after a few months I caught him as black and portly as possible. Such facts certainly prove, to my own satisfaction at least, that trouts do not vary in original and indelible type so much as is generally imagined. In regard to what follows upon the changing colours of fish when in the act of dying, I cannot speak with the same certainty ; but either my eyes deceived me very much (and at the period of life to which I refer they were pretty good), or I observed the following phenomena : — I usually killed my fish, not by breaking their necks, as is noAV generally the method adopted, but by slapping their heads against a stone, the edge of my shoe, or the butt of my fishing-rod ; and even when a boy T was sensible of some change which took place in the colour of the dying victim. A kind of streamer, or phosphorus light, seemed to shoot along the quivering flesh, and only ceased with the life of the trout. In sahnon I should think the fact is still more manifest. The salmon fishery at the Eden afforded me an acci- dental proof of this. Some summers ago I was in the habit of bathing near the stakes at ebb tide, when the salmon were removed from the nets. I had a pleasure in walking into the inside of the nets, and seeing the finely-shaped living salmon plunging about, and still in their native element. Upon securing the fish, the men were in the habit of giving them the coujj de grace on the forehead with a wooden mallet, — analogous to E 2 52 LITTLE SUFFERING FROM THE HOOK. my fishing-rod butt ; find at each successive stroke on the brain, the colours undulated away in the most delicate and beautiful radiance. All this is, indeed, ex- ceedingly revolting to humanity, and presents a tempting theme for the reprobation of the poet and sentimentalist ; and yet I confess that I cannot enter completely into this feeling, not only from my enjoyment of, and relish for, the sjiort of rod-fishing, but even from consider- ations of a more legitimate bearing. I do not think that cold-blooded animals suffer equally with warm- blooded ; and my grounds for forming this opinion I shall shortly state. I have often lost a trout which had gorged my bait, and yet recaptured him in a short time with the former hook deej) fastened in his stomach, and the broken line pending from his jaws. I, for one, certainly shoidd have had little appetite to dine so soon after swallowing a fork. I have seen a large trout enjoying the amplitude of a clear pond with a couple of my fly-hooks appended to his nose. Nay, I have even witnessed him rising to a natural fly in this situation, whilst, fisher-like, he caught a smaller com- panion by the depending hook. Nature is wonderfully benevolent to her children. The absence of all kiiid of medical aid in the waters seems to be fully compen- sated by the vis medicatrix naturcB — an old experienced practitioner, by whose management the most severe wounds made by the pike upon the trout, and the grampus upon the salmon, are safely and rapidly cured. I have caught trout s, particularly in the neighbourhood where pike harbour, in various states of mutilation, yet seemingly in good health and spirits ; from all which I DK. staek's experiments. 53 infer that their physical sufferings are less than we suppose, and that the quiverings which they exhibit when dying are rather of a galvanic (which the change of colour seems to countenance) than of a convulsive or very painful character. It is, at least, comfortable for those Avho have been accessary in early life to much apjmrent suffering, to find out afterwards that the suffering was more apparent than real.' " Sir David Brewster stated to the Society that he had been led to consider this subject in consequence of a cor- respondence with W. Scrojje, Esq., who had paid much attention to the change of colour in fishes. Mr. Scrope was of opinion that a real change of colour took place, if not voluntarily, at least very quickly ; and he supported his views by the following opinions of Mr. Yarrell and Mr. Shaw : — " 'An interesting account (says Mr. Yarrell) of some experiments made by Dr. Stark, was pubUshed in Jamieson's Edinburgh Journal for 1830, page 327. It shows that the colour of sticklebacks, and some other small fishes, is influenced not only by the colour of the earthenware or other vessel in which they are kept, but also modified by the quantity of light to which they are exposed ; becoming pale when placed in a white vessel in darkness, even for a comparatively short time, and regaining their natural colour when placed in the sun. From these circumstances, observed also in some species of other genera, Dr. Stark is led to infer that fishes possess, to a certain extent, the power of accommodating their colour to the ground or bottom of E 3 54 013SERVATI0NS OF SIR D. BREWSTER. the waters in which they are found. The final reason for this may be traced to the protection such a power aiFords to secure them from the attacks of their ene- mies, and exliibits another beautiful instance of the care displayed by Nature in the preservation of all her species. Dr. Stark often observed that on a flat, sandy coast, the flounders were coloured so very much like the sand, that, unless they moved, it was im- possible to distinguish them from the bottom on which they lay.' " Mr. Shaw, who has the charge of the salmon cruive at Drumlanrig, has observed that the Salmon taken in it change their colour in consonance with the turbid or refined state of the water. In the experiments he has made with Parr in different-coloured earthenware ves- sels, the change of colour is perfected in the space of four minutes. If Parr is taken from the dark-coloured vessel, and put immediately to the Parr in the light- coloured one, the difference of colour between the tAvo fish will be found strikingly observable. " Mr. Scrope himself had observed that the Trout at Castle Combe are white in a chalky spate, resuming their colour when the water clears; and that in aU the rivers in which he had fished, the fish are clear in a gravelly bottom, and dark in that overhung with trees. All this he considered as resulting from the same prin- ciple of preservation by which the ptarmigan and alpine hares have their colours changed with the approach of snow. "Notwithstanding these distinct statements by so many observers in whom confidence might be placed. VARIOUS OPINIONS. 55 Sir David thought that the experiments required to be repeated by persons acquainted Avith those branches of physical optics with Avhich the phenomena were inti- mately allied. It is very easy to explain why a fish may appear dark in a dark vessel, and light in a co- loured one; and why it should have a still different appearance when taken out of both vessels and exposed to the light of the sun. All bodies assume the colour of the light which they reflect, and a brilliant light will develope colours which are invisible in light of ordinary intensity. As the pecuHar colours of fishes depend on the tliickness or size of certain minute transparent par- ticles, it is not easy to understand how the fish could voluntarily alter the size or thickness of those particles, or how exposure to another colour could permanently produce the same mechanical effect. If a fish is kept in mossy or muddy water, it will doubtless absorb the colouring matter which the water may contain; but this is rather a process of dyeing than one of physiolo- gical action. The changes said to take place in the colour of fishes when dying might arise from the drying of their scales, which produces a change in all colours, but particularly in those of thin fihus, which are quite different when they are dry from what they are when immersed in a fluid. *'A conversational discussion then took place, in which Professor Connell supported Dr. Gillespie's views, and Dr. Reid those of Sir D. Brewster." This subject is in such good hands, that I shall not intrude any speculative observations of my own. We have lately seen such wonderful effects produced by E 4 56 RODERICK DHU TROUT. the agency of light, that these thhigs are become less startling. It is very certain that Trouts and Salmon are less vivid in colour, and in fact more grey, when they have been some time out of their element; fishmongers throw water from time to time over their fish, as well to preserve their colour as to keep them fresh. I would recommend any one who wishes to show his day's sport in the pink of perfection, to keep his Trouts in a wet cloth, so that on his return home he may ex- hibit them to his admiring friends, and extract from them the most approved of epithets and exclamations, taking the praise bestowed upon the fish as a particular compliment to himself. Since our writing the above remarks, I have paid more attention to the subject, and am enabled to state that in one particular part of the river Chess, I have been in the habit of taking Trouts of a darker and greyer colour than those which I captured in the other parts of this little stream; and, observing this to be invariably the case, I desired my fisherman to scoop up some of the channel with his landing net, which proved upon inspection to be part of a stratum of black flint. I can state farther, — what appears to me to be alto- gether a curious circumstance. I had often observed that the largest of those Trout which almost con- tinually lay under the Iddes, which were constructed in the stream and covered with boards, — being, in fact, large troughs open at the lower end so as to admit the fish, and staked within so as to preserve them from being CHAMELEON TROUT. 57 poached out, — were of a very black colour : this arose, no doubt, from the privation of light. Sometimes I have seen them lying on the shalloAvs within a few yards of the hide, where they still retained their black hue. I caught with a minnow one of these dirty- looking animals in the month of June last. He was not only black in the back, so that he could be seen at a considerable distance in the water, but was also of a granulated inky cast on his sides and underneath : his resort was under a hide in comparative darkness. He was not wasted, but of the same proportions with his brighter companions. I concluded, however, that from his African appearance he would cut but a sorry figure at the table ; but being about three quarters of a pound, with no promise of amendment, I bagged him notwith- standing. As this was the first Trout I took that morning, he lay at the bottom of my basket. After catching a few more lower down in the river, I thought I would have another look at my swarthy captive. I found him more praiseworthy than at first ; for the upper side, which came in contact with the other fish, became also bright, and of a colour exactly similar to them, whilst the loAver side that touched the dry basket re- tained its original dark hue ; but by turning that part of the fish also towards the others, the whole Trout after a time became of a uniform bright colour, and was not in that respect dissimilar to the rest. I do not mean to hint that the blackamoor was dyed by his dead companions, because I think that a wet cloth Avould have produced the same effect; but it seems extraordinary that the water, which had no effect upon 58 SALMON. his colour when living in the river, should have so de- cided a one after he was dead, — not bringing back the original dye, but removing the dark tint entu-ely. But to return to my subject. It is an undoubted fact that Salmon ascend some rivers much earlier than others. I have rented fisheries both in Tweed and Tay, and to my own knowledge the latter river is a month earlier than the former. The Esk and the Eden both fall into the Solway Firth, and are only separated at their mouths by a sharp point of land ; yet, according to the statement of Mr. Howard*, a proprietor and renter of the river Eden, new fish go uji that river three months before they ascend the Esk, and the month of February is one of the greatest produce there. The Irthing falls into the Eden, and may be a fourth of its water ; but no Salmon run up it, except in spawning time. Now the waters of the Eden may be presumed to be of a warmer temperature than those of the Esk, which latter is a brawling shallow stream, wdder also than the Eden, which is of a deeper and more tranquil nature. Snow water is offensive to fish, and they will not ascend a river whilst it is impregnated with it. Setting aside this impediment, and cateris paribus, I believe the season of all rivers depends upon the temperature of their waters during the winter and spring months. Thus the Ness is the forwardest river in Scotland, which the following table of monthly captures produced by Mr. Alexander Eraser f will prove. * Evidence before Select Committee in 1825, p. 140. t Ibid. p. 42. ElVER NESS. 59 Statement of the Number of Salmon Killed in the Ness in Twelve Years. Total Salmon 1811. 1811-12. 1812-13. 1813-14. 1814-15. 1815-16. 1816-17. 1817-18. 1818-19. monthly in Eight Years. Sal. Gr. Sal. Gr. Sal. Gr. Sal. Gr. Sal. Gr. Sal. Gr. Sal. Gr. Sal. Gr. Dec. 226 - 454 - 391 - 240 - 324 - 422 128 - 220 - 2405 1812. Jan. 427 . .565 354 . 204 . 370 . 10.52 . 388 . 194 . 3.554 Feb. 194 - 874 289 . 296 . 298 . 696 . 326 . 266 . 3239 March 103 - .591 . 522 . 164 . 645 - 490 . 270 . 244 . 3029 April 157 - 461 . 227 - 195 - 283 - 370 . 248 - 206 - 2147 May 29 . 157 . 359 - 1.52 . 102 • 246 . 34 - 48 - 1127 June 6 39 18 27 69 180 7 20 16 11 40 . 10 4 - 170 July 2.5 211 38 208 21 263 51 97 40 164| ,57 184 12 147 9 84 253 Aug. 236 1361 318 700 221 710 292 186 187 406; 604 340i 260 286 74 240 2192 Sept. 77 482 74 169 15 _!! 21 142 18 120 178 187; 19 170; 28 120 430 1480 2093'35.'5o'll04 2468 1250 16'J2 4:!5'22'<3 707 4155 711 1695 003 1293 444 18,.546 1819-1820 1820-1821 1821-1822 1822-1823 Sal. 1215 1806 710 344 Now it must be observed that the Ness never freezes, even with the most intense frost. In the year 1807, Avhen the thermometer at Inverness was from 23 to 30 and even 40 degrees below the freezing point, it made no impression upon the river or the lake. " The Ness (says Mr. Fraser) was always privileged earlier than any river in Scotland from this cause ; and it will be evi- dent that the Salmon taken in December and January are the most valuable produce : for though they appear to be only one third of the total number, yet from their size they constitute more than half the weight." The most forward rivers in Ireland, I am informed by the London fishmongers, and from other sources, are those on the western coast. In England, perhaps the Severn produces the finest Salmon during the Avinter months ; and the Lord Viscount Clive, proprietor of a 60 RENTAL OF SALMON FISHERY. salmon fishery in the Severn, near Poole Quay, says* the best fish are commonly taken there in November, December, and January, though they are not numerous, and that in the Dovey and Tivy, two rivers with which he is well acquainted, the Salmon are always in the best season at the period when the Severn Salmon are in the worst condition. But if Salmon prefer the warmest rivers in the win- ter, they spawn earliest in those that are most cold. Thus in the shallow mountain streams which pour into the Tay nearer its sources (I do not mean such as may issue from lochs), the fish spawn much earlier than those in the main bed of the river. The late John Crerar, head fisherman and forester to the Duke of Atholl, wrote thus in his manuscript : — " There are two kinds of creatures that I am well acquainted with, — the one a land animal, the other a water one : the red deer, and the salmon. In October the deer ruts, and the salmon spawns. The deer begins soonest, high up amongst the hills, particularly in frosty weather; so does the salmon begin to spawn earlier in frosty weather than in soft. The master hart would keep all the other harts from the hind, if he could ; and the male salmon would keep all the other males from the female, if he was able." The gross rental of the salmon fishings in Tweed is very considerable ; but has varied very much in amount from time to time, according to the plenty or scarcity of fish. ISIr. John Wilson f states, that during the seven * Minutes of Evidence ttilcen in 1825, &c. p. 14. •f Minutes of Evidence, &c. in 1824, p. 9. CAIRN NET. 61 years previous to 1824 it averaged 12,000/. a year; but in that year only about 10,000/. With the present rental I am unacquainted. " The fishings, as regards their relative value, may be divided into the following classes : — The first compre- hends the short distance from the mouth of the river to Berwick Bridge, where alone there are probably a greater number of salmon captured than in all the remainder of the river. From Berwick Bridge to Norham, to which place the tide reaches, may be considered the second class : as far as this place the net and coble only are in use. From Norham to Coldstream Bridge the fishings are of still less value ; and here, besides the net and coble, the various modes of fishing practised in the upper parts of the river are also in use — rodjisliing, setting, leistering ; cairn, hanging, and straik nets. From Coldstream to the Bridge of Kelso the net and coble are used only par- tially in floods ; and on Mondays, says Mr. Houy, when, by the cessation of the lower fishings on Sunday, the salmon get further up, I have seen from 100 to 500 salmon and gilses caught at Kelso in the morning by the net and coble. From Kelso to the higher districts of the river the principal modes of fishing are by the rod, leister, caii*n and straik net." When fish are ascending the river the cairn net is very destructive. In the parts of the river most favour- able for placing it a cairn is built, as in the vignette. This projection into the current makes the water com- paratively still and easy below ; and Salmon in travelling naturally take to it, as finding there some relief to the labour of ascending. They pass between the net and the fi2 SALMON TROUT. shore ; and endeavouring to get forwards at the point of the cairn become entangled in the net, and are taken in great quantities. THE SALMON TEOUT. Salmo Trutta, Limi. This fish is called by different names in various locali- ties, — White Trout, Phinock, Sea Trout, TVIiitling, Ilirlitiy. It is little inferior to the Salmon in flavour ; and being less rich, is I presume more wholesome. It is distinguished, says Mr. Yarrell, by the gill-cover being intermediate in its form between that of the Salmon, and Grey or Bull Trout. The teeth likewise SALMON TROUT. 63 are more slender, as well as more numerous than in those fish. The tail is less forked than in Salmon of the same age, and smaller in proportion, but becomes ulti- mately square at the end. It is found in most, if not in all salmon rivers ; but it is now very scarce in the Tweed, which I attribute to the spates that are become more sudden and violent in that river than formerly, owing to a more complete drainage of the mountains and adjoining lands; for these fish always prefer the smaller and less turbulent streams. Like the Salmon, it remains in the river two years before it puts on the migratory dress, and the males also shed their milt at eighteen months old, similar to the Parr (so called) of a corresponding age. The Orange Fin, for so the fry of the Sea Trout is called, so much resembles the common River Trout, that it is with very great difficulty it can be distinguished from it. Like the Gilse, it returns to the river the smnmer of its spring migration, weighing about a pound and a half upon an average. It afterwards increases about a pound and a half a year ; but is seldom seen above six or seven pounds, though it probably attains to a much greater weight. By the aid of the cruive, Mr. Shaw traced this fish from the Orange Fin of three ounces to the Hirling or Wliitling, up to the Sea Trout of seven pounds ; and he has now a specimen in his possession exhibiting the four several marks he had put on it in the course of its annual migrations. At the size of six pounds the central rays of the tail were considerably increased in length, so much so in the males that their tails became 64 SALMON TROUT. actually rounded : the fish altogether at this time loses a great deal of Its former elegance. The tails of the females of a corresponding age are more square, and their general shape is more slim. These fish may be crossed with Salmon ; I mean that by artificial impregnation hybrids may be thus produced. Mr. Shaw says in a letter to me, dated November 25th, 1840: — "I put some of your sug- gestions regarding the ova of the Salmon, and the com- mon Trout, Sea Trout, and Salmon, into practice about a month ago, and shall let you know the result." The following year I had the pleasure of a letter from him, dated October 14th, 1841, saying that " The hy- brids which I produced by artificial impregnation last autumn are all in a very healthy state, the cross not having in the slightest degree aifected their consti- tution. Those produced between the Salmon and the Salmon Trout (^Salmo Truttci) appear to partake more of the external markings, silvery coating, and elegance of form of the Parr (young Salmon) than any of the others. Those produced between the Sahnon and com- mon Trout {Sahno Fario), and between the common Trout and Salmon Trout, have in every respect more the appearance of the common Trout than the former." Some have imagined that the Whitling or Hirling are the young of the Bull Trout. But this is a mistake, as the Hirling abounds in the Annan, where the Bull Trout is very rarely seen ; and also in the Nith, where INIr. Shaw has never been able to discover one of the other species. Lord Home likewise, whom I consider the very best practical authority, says, " The Whitling BULL TROUT. 65 of the Tweed is the Sahnon Trout, and not the young Bull Trout, which now goes by the name of Trout simply." THE GREY, BULL TROUT, or ROUND TAIL. Salmo Eriox, Linn. " The Grey Trout," says Mr. Yarrell, " is distinguished from the Salmon and Salmon Trout by several specific peculiarities. The giU-cover differs from them decidedly in form, and the teeth arc longer and stronger." The tail grows square at an earlier period than in the Salmon ; and the central caudal rays continuing to elongate vdth age, the whole tail, originally concave, eventually becomes convex, and from thence it has been called the Round Tail. The elongation of the under jaw is peculiar to the males only, and is less than in the Salmon. The scales also are less, the shoulders thicker, and the tail more muscular. In short, it is altogether a more thick and powerful fish than the Sahnon, and consequently gives the angler more sport ; but to the epicure it gives less, as it is inferior in flavour and colour, and if not very fresh from the sea its flesh is short and woolly. It is very much the colour of the Salmon, but tinted with grey or brown spots. These fish are found in many sahnon rivers, but not in aU. It is very abundant in the Tweed, which it visits principally at two seasons ; in the spring about the month of May, and again in the month of October, F 66 iSEVKIlE CONTEST. when the mules are very plentiful ; but the females are scarce till about the beginning or middle of No- vember. With Salmon it is the reverse, as their females leave the sea before the males. The Bull Trout is also more regular in his habits than the Salmon, for the fish- ermen can calculate almost to a day when the large black male Trouts will leave the sea. The foul fish rise eagerly at the fly, but the clean ones by no means so. They ^veigli from two to twenty-four pounds, and occa- casionally, I presume, but very rarely indeed, more. The largest I ever heard of was taken in the Hallow- stell fishing water at the mouth of the Tweed, in April, 1840, and weighed twenty-three pounds and a half. The heaviest Bull Trout I ever encountered myself weighed sixteen pounds, and I had a long and severe contest with his majesty. He was a clean fish, and I hooked him in a cast in Mertoun Water called the Willoio Bush, not in the mouth, but in the dorsal fin. Brethren of the craft, guess wdiat sore work I had with him ! He went here and there with apparent comfort and ease to his own person, but not to mine. I really did not know what to make of him. There never was such a hector. I cannot say exactly how long I had him on the hook ; it seemed a week at least. At length John Haliburton, who was then my fisherman, waded into the river up to his middle, and cleiked him whilst he was hanging in the stream, and before he was half beat. Besides the tln-ee species I have mentioned, I have sometimes, though very rarely, caught a fish very si- milar in shape to the Grey or Bull Trout, but much ROYAL BURGH OF PEEBLES. 67 cleaner, which the fishermen call a North-country Salmon. It is clearly not a Bull Trout, for that fish is as well known in the Tweed as the Salmon itself. I have no doubt but that it is rightly named, and a wan- derer from the northern coasts. I have also occasionally caught in the Tweed a small silver fish, between a quarter and half a pound, which seems of the Salmon tribe ; its flesh is of a pale pink, and good eating. In the river Isla I have taken many of them with a net. I have now given a brief account of all the fish of the Salmon tribe in the Tweed, except the Sahno Fario, or common Trout, which I do not profess to treat of. Much more has been said by naturalists as to dis- tinctive character and organisation. Whoever wishes for minute information on these points, cannot do better than consult the new edition of INIr. Yarrell's unrivalled work on British Fishes, — a gentleman to whom I feel much indebted for some very liljeral and scientific com- munications; nor must they omit to look into the pages of a most highly entertaining and clever work lately published, called *^Tlie Rod and the Gun." I shall only add, that in allusion to the consequence attributed to these beautiful fish in the Tweed, and in consideration of the favourable places for spawning in the upper parts of the river, the Royal Burgh of Peebles wears for arms, — vert, three salmon counter naiant in pale argent, with the motto, " Contra nando Incre- mentum." In the arms of the city of Glasgow, and in those of F 2 68 ST. KENTIGERN. the ancient see, a salmon with a ring in its mouth is said to record a miracle of St. Kentigcrn, the founder of the see, and the first Bishop of Glasgow. " They report," says Spotswood, " of St. Kentigern, that a lady of good place in the country, having lost her ring as she crossed the river Clyde, and her husband waxing jealous, as if she had bestowed the same on one of her lovers, she did mean herself unto Kentigern, entreating his help for the safety of her honour ; and that he going to the river after he had used his devotion, Avilled one who was making to fish to bring the first fish he caught, which was done. In the mouth of this fish he foimd the ring, and, sending it to the lady, she was thereby freed of her husband's suspicion." The classical . tale of Polycrates, says the very clever author of " The Heraldry of Fish," related by Herodotus a thousand years before the time of St. Kentigern, is, perhaps, the earliest version of the fish and the ring, Avhich has been often repeated with variations. The ring, says Herodotus, was an emerald set in gold, and beautifully engraved, the w^ork of Theodorus the Samian; and this very ring, Pliny relates, was preserved in the Temple of Concord in Rome, to w4iich it was given by the Emperor Au- gustus. In the Koran of Mahomet the legend of the ring, and its recovery by means of a fish, is introduced. " Solomon entrusted his signet with one of his concu- bines, which the Devil obtained from her, and sat on KORAN OF MAHOMET. 69 the throne in Solomon's shape. After forty days the Devil departed, and threw the ring into the sea. The signet was swallowed by a fish, which being caught and given to Solomon, the ring was found in his belly, and thus he recovered his kingdom." * * Sale's Ti'anslation of the Koran. p 3 '•/ iSv. //S' ,/r I mm^-% CHAP. III. " Hostess. Say what beast, thou knave thou. Falstaff. What beast I Whj', an otter. Hostess. An otter. Sir John ! why an otter? Falstaff. Why, she's neither fish nor flesh. A man knows not where to have her."' Before I enter upon the practical part of Salmon Fishing, I will just say a few w^ords about my natural tendency to the sport, to the end that it may be evident that my maxims are not drawn from books, but originate in my own experience. WATER CURE REJECTED. 71 I declare, then, that I, Harry Otter, am by nature a person of considerable aquatic propensities, having been born under the sign of Aquarius, or Pisces, — it matters not which. My delight in water, however, has its limits, and extends only to external applications: the placid amusement of wading in a Salmon river is very much to my taste — quite captivating. Showers, and even storms, if not of too long a continuance, are exceedingly refreshing to my person ; but I must in candour admit that the decisive action of a water-spout may not possibly be so gratifying — ne quid nimis, Macintosh's invention I consider as wholly uncalled for, accounting it, as I do, an unpardonable intrusion to place a solution of Indian-rubber between the human body and a refreshing element. It is like taking a shower-bath under shelter of an uml^rella. Thus far I can extend ; but desire me to drink water by itself, and I am your very humble servant. Had I been at a symposium of brandy and the said vapid element with that worthy Magnus Troil, he should not have drunk all the brandy himself, and put me off with the water, as he is recorded to have done to his very simple friend. I beg to say that I am not one of those two thousand patients who have been relieved by a water cure, administered by James Wilson, Esq., physician to liis Serene Highness the Prince of Nassau, as advertised. Internally, in its pure state, I totally discard it. But I like the society of fish ; and as they cannot with any convenience to themselves visit me on dry land, it becomes me in point of courtesy to pay my respects to them in their own element. F 4 72 CTIILDISn INCIDENT. Next to wading in water, comes, I think, the pastime of trudging over bogs and fens, — ground intimately allied to it, and which Colonel Hawker has made quite classical. This is a sort of debateable land, and the natural inhabitants of it reject you with most vin- equivocal signs of disapprobation. Tlie red shank, the pewet, the curlew, and all their allies, scream and dart around you, inhospitable as they are, and tell you, as plainly as bills can speak, to sheer off, and not invade their premises. But we are a sort of Paul Pry, and love to persist responding now and then with our double barrel, which we more especially direct towards the ruff, snipe, Avild duck, and teal, — birds whose merit we particularly appreciate. Thus we are, as may be seen, of an amphibious nature, and respond to the fat knight's description, when he compared Hostess Quickly to our namesake. That this predilection for humidity is w^ith me an instinct, may be seen from the following briei notice of my infant propensities. "NYlien I was an urchin I stole off, and wandered up the stream that came winding through the verdant meadows of my native valley, till I arrived at the foot of the Castle Hill ; following the little path that dived into a thicket, and wound round its base near the mar- gin of the river : thence, amongst irregular clumps of thorn bushes, holly trees, and other wild wood, stopping a while to gather the cowslips and white violets that dappled the sunny slopes, I pursued my way through a ■tangled thicket, whose branches overhung the stream. I remember even now that the sunbeam glittered on the leaves, struck through the masses here and there. INSULAR LIFE. 73 and pierced to the surface of the water, which shone in spots through the gloom like the fragments of a broken mirror : these lucid touches caught my childish fancy ; but my favourite spot was not yet attained. Not until I had rounded the rib of the promontory on which stood the grey castle, and came to another face of it, did I obtain the object of my ramble. At this turn of the stream I found myself in a small lonely meadow sprinkled with cowslips, upon which oi^ened two wooded valleys, each watered by a small stream, which at their junction washed out a deep hole ; and at the foot of the hole a small gravel heap was thrown up, upon which grew the yellow iris, and some other vegetation. In Lilliput it would have been termed an island : so in truth it was. I know not how it happened, — unless, indeed, that I was strictly enjoined not to go near the water, — but I had a decided propensity to establish my httle person on this insular spot. For some time I was either very good, or very much afraid — - it matters not which, — and the achievement was dubious. At length the demon of temptation appeared in the form of a dragon- fly, which, glancing from some branches that extended across the stream a little above, danced up and down in the air in all its gaudy trim, and at length settled on an iris in this enchanted island. I stood enraptured on the bank with my arms outstretched, and my longing eyes fixed upon the beauty. It was irresistible — I could hold out no longer. So mustering up my naughty courage, and letting myself gently down the bank, I paddled through a httle shallow water, till I actually set foot safely on the desired spot. Here I 74 IMAliTlIA S ELOgUIiNCE. found that my love for the lihella was not mutual ; or, if it was, 1 may say, " Love, free as air, at siglit of human ties Spreads its light wings, and in a moment flies." Even so did the dragon-fly : he and my hopes vanished at once. Nevertheless I shoAved a decided taste for an insular life, and sat down watching the trout rise on all sides, as happy as a king ; and I might have remained there to this day, had not that kill-joy Martha, who was blest with the care of me, and from whom I had escaped in the morning, come upon my trail. Infuriated she was (for the whole Xantippe possessed her). She sallied forth like another Ceres in quest of her lost child. Half frightened, half pleased, I could see her toiling up the hill. " JMaster Harry ! Master Harry ! " resounded shrilly through the woods and valleys : even now me- thinks her voice rings in my ears. In vain — '■ Xor at the lawn, nor at the wood, was he." But when at length she returned, " alia solinga valle," I stood confessed within the range of her animated optics. She declared her sentiments without reserve in very fluent language. I was an ohstroj)olons brat; a perfect damoii (demon), as fond of dabbling in water as a sally mander. I should catch it when she got hold of me, that I should. This being intelligibly explained, I thought I would delay that period as long as possible. To all this eloquence, therefore, answer made I none ; but I believe I looked and felt rather oddly. At length, seeing her amble to and fro upon the banks, and per- ceiving that she had the hydrophobia strong upon her, THE COY PHYLLIS. 75 I told her if she wanted me she must come and fetch me, as I was forbidden to go into the water. " Hang your imperance, I says. Master Harry, but I'll find one as shall fetch you in a twinkling ! " So saying, the elo- quent Martha suited the action to the word, and ran round the turn of the river, where it seems she knew the keeper was fishing, who, I believe, in village phrase, ** kept company with her." Down comes John, a good- natured fellow ; tickles me with the point of his fishing rod in gamesome mood ; makes two or three casts with his fly at me ; and at length wades to me, and places me on the mainland at the gentle Martha's side. Peace was made, but without promise for the future. Henceforth, when I could escape control, I divided my time between the water and the meadows : in warm weather the water, in cold the land possessed me. Then I began to tamper with the minnows ; and, grow- ing more ambitious, after a sleepless night full of high cojitrivance, I betook me at early dawn to a wood near the house, where I selected some of the straightest hazel sticks I could find, which I tied together and christened a fishing rod : a rude and uncouth weapon it was. I next sought out Phyllis, a favourite cow so called, in order to have a jiluck at her tail to make a line with. But Phyllis was coy, and Avitliheld her consent to spoli- ation ; for when I got hold of her posterior honours, she galloped off, dragging me along, tail in hand, till she left me deposited in a water-course amongst the frogs. The dairy -maid, I think, would have overcome this difficulty for me, had I not discovered that horse-hair, and not cow's tail, was the proper material for fishing lines ; so 70 SELF-DEVOTION OF A FISIT. the coachman, who was much my friend, phicketl Cham- jjion and Dunqdln, at my request, and gave mc as much hair (black enough to be sure) as would make a dozen lines. For three whole days did I twist and weave like the Fates, and for three whole nights did I dream of my work. Some rusty hooks I had originally in my possession, which I found in an old fishing book belong- ing to my ancestors. In fxct, I did not put the hook to the rod and line, but my rod and line to the hook. I next proceeded to the pigeon-house, and picking some coarse feathers, made what I alone in the wide world would have thought it becoming to have called a fly ; but call it so I did, in spite of contradictory evidence. Thus equipped, I proceeded to try my skill ; but exert myself as I would, the line had domestic qualities, and was resolved to stay at home. I never could get it fairly away from the hazel sticks ; therefore it was that I hooked no fish. But I hooked myself three times : once in the knee-strings of my shorts, once in the nostril, and again in the lobe of the ear. At length, after sundry days of fruitless effort, like an infant Belial, I attempted that by guile which I could not do by force; and drop- ping the fly with my hand under a steep bank of the stream, I walked up and down trailing it along : after about a week's perseverance, I actually caught a trout. Shade of Izaak Walton, what a triumph was there ! That day I could not eat, — that night I slept not. Even now I recollect the spot where that generous fish devoted himself. As I grew up I became gradually more expert, and at length saved money sufficient to buy a real fishing FEATS OF MASTEK HARRY. 77 rod, line, reel and all, quite complete. Down it came from London resplendent with varnish, and many cunning feats did I perform with it. About this time I learned to shoot ; not that I was strong enough to hold a gun, but that the keeper put the said implement to his shoulder, when I took aim at larks and sjiarrows, and those sort of tilings, and pulled the trigger. So I waxed in years and wisdom. All the time I could steal from my lessons (for I was not quite a Pawnee) I spent in this edifying manner ; at length I was fully initiated in all the mysteries of sporting by a relation, himself the prince of sportsmen, who took a fancy to me. The reason was as follows : — In the depth of winter, the ground being smothered with snow, and the blast bitter, I followed him out a wild-fowl shooting. I was devoid of hat, an article that I looked upon as superfluous, and that I always lost or mis- laid as soon as it was given me. Equipped I w^as in white cotton stockings ; and my shoes, wliich were of the thin- nest, I had tied to my feet with a string w^hich passed over the instep. I could not put them up at heel Avith any comfort, because I had large chilblains there, which were broke. At length, after creeping a space on my gloveless hands and knees in the snow, and under cover of some sedge and willow bushes, up flew some wild ducks before my patron. " Quack, quack ! " — down came one to his shot, and fell with a splash into the river. In I plunged after him like a Newfoundland dog : you might have heard the flounce in a still day at Chippen- ham, about six miles ofl". The duck not being dead, made a swim and a dive of it. Lonsr and dubious was the 78 lOKTLNATE WADING. chase ; but in the end I descried liis bill auiungst tlie sedges, where he hud jjoked it up to take a little breath. Making a dexterous snatch, I seized him underneath by the legs, — Chinese fashion, with the exception of the piunpkin, — and drew him loud quacking to the bank. When landed I squeezed my clothes a little, according to order ; Init I do not believe tliat I benefitted my chil- blains. At a rather more advanced period of my life I used to make long fishing excursions, generally with prosperous, but occasionally with disastrous results. I remember well, when a pair of bait-hooks was to me a valuable concern, I hooked two large black-looking trouts in a deep jdooI at the same time. As I had to pull them several feet upwards against the pressure of the stream, my line gave way, and left me proprietor of a small fragment only. For some time I looked alternately at my widowed rod and my departed fish ; Avhich last w^cre coursing it round and round the pool, j^ulling in oj)posite directions, like coupled dogs of dissenting opinions : Durum — sed levius fit patientia. So I sat down with somewhat of a rueful countenance, and began to spin with my fingers some horse-hair which I had pulled that morning, at the risk of my life, from the grey colt's tail. This being done in my own peculiar manner, and my only remaining hook being tied on with one of the aforesaid hairs, I continued to folloAv my sport down the stream for about half a mile. After the lajjse of a considerable time, I had occa- sion to cross bare-legged from one bank to the other. In my transit through the current, I found something like a sharp instrument cutting the calves of my legs. THE PET BASKET. 79 I scampered ashore, under the impression that I was trailing after me some sharp-toothed monster, perhaps a lamper eel ; when, upon passing down my hand to as- certain the fact, I found to my great astonishment and delight that I was once more in possession of my lost line, hooks, fish, and all. The fish had fairly drowned each other, and, by a curious coincidence, were passively passing in the current at the time my legs stemmed it. Originally I had what in Scotland is called a, poke or bag to carry my trouts in. Tliis being rather of a coarse appearance, I panted after a basket. One of my school- fellows had exactly the thing ; and I bargained for it by giving in return all my jDcrsonal right in perpetuity to two young hawks. Proud of my acquisition, I set out with no small share of vanity, carrying my basket through the whole length of a neighbouj-ing village, which was considerably out of the way. When I arrived at the happy spot where my sport lay, I was successful as usual. At length the declining sun admonished me of some ten miles betwixt me and home ; so I resolved only to take a few casts in a dark and deep pool which was close at hand, and then to bend my course homeward. There I hooked a fine fish, which I was obliged to play for some time, and then, after he was fairly tired, to lift out Avith my hands, not having yet arrived at the dignity of a landing net. In stooping low to perform this pro- cess, the lid of my new pet basket, which from want of experience I had omitted to fasten, flew open, and two or three of my last-killed fish dropped into the deep water immediately before me. In suddenly reaching forward to secure these, round came my basket, fish and 80 ENCOUNTER WITH A DUCK. all, over my head, and fairly capsized me. With some difficulty, aud even risk of drowning, I got my head above water, and my hand on the crown of a sharp rock. There I stood, streaming and disconsolate, casting a wist- ful look at the late bright inmates of my basket, which Avere tilting down the weeds through the gullet into a tremendous pool, vulgarly called Hell's Cauldron. Into that same pool with the ominous name had I myself very nearly passed, and thus had followed my hat, which was coursing about in the eddy or wheel of this fearful depth. Thus vanished before my eyes my whole day's sport, for dead fish immediately sink ; and it w^as not Avithout some skilful fishing up that my hat and I re- newed our acquaintance. I have before observed that Avhen I was quite an urchin I never wore a hat, or any covering over my hair ; but as I grew older I thought it decorous to follow the fashion. At another time, whilst still a puer, and only pos- sessed of one single bait-hook, to my utter confusion I found that solitary hook had been swallowed by a duck, which a mass of sedges under the bank had concealed from my view. There we were, Mrs. Duck and I, dashing, swashing, and swattering down the stream ; the duck all the time declaring his sentiments by the ut- terance of a fearful noise, and I endeavouring by every means in my power to prevent my only hook from being ravished from me by my feathered opponent. In the meantime a group of lasses, who were washing clothes at the river side, and were friendly to the bird, set upon me, first with their tongues, of the use of which they seemed to be in full possession, and latterly with their AN IDLE SCAMP. 81 palls and watering pans ; in consequence of which I was compelled to snap my line, and tnrn upon my fair tormentors. But let no boy of fourteen ever try to face a batch of lasses. In fine, I was terribly mauled, and did not feel my ears at all comfortable in their externals for a considerable time afterwards. But enough of these idle anecdotes. The reader will now understand that I, Harry Otter, was an idle scamp. If he chooses to keep company with me in my rambles, he will, nevertheless, find no very particular harm in me, and I on my part shall be delighted to hold good fellow- ship with an indulgent brother of the craft. ■' I saw young: Harry with his beaver off.' G 82 Ml UDEllOUS FISH. CHAP. IV. " I in these flowery meads would be ; These crystal streams shall solace me." Much has been said by various humane persons about the cruelty of fishing ; but setting aside that, according to the authority of the eminent author of Salmonia, and of Dr. Gillespie also, who, by-the-by, is professor of humanity at St. Andrew's, fish seldom feel any pain from the hook. Let us see how the case stands. I take a little wool and feather, and, tying it in a particular manner upon a hook, make an imitation of a fly ; then I throw it across the river, and let it sweep round the stream with a lively motion. This I have an undoubted right to do, for the river belongs to me or my friend ; but mark what follows. Up starts a monster fish with his murder- ous jaws, and makes a dash at my little Andromeda. Thus he is the aggressor, not I ; his intention is evidently to commit murder. He is caught in the act of putting that intention into execution. Having wantonly intruded himself on my hook, which I contend he had no right to do, he darts about in various directions, evidently sur- prised to find that the fly, which he hoped to make an easy conquest of, is much stronger than himself. I naturally attempt to regain this fly, unjustly withheld from me. The fish gets tired and weak in his lawless endeavours to deprive me of it. I take advantage of his weakness, I own, and drag him, somewhat loth, to the shore, where one raj) at the back of the head ends HYPOCRITICAL FISH. ^ 83 hiin in an instant. If he is a trout, I find his stomach distended with flies. That beautiful one called the May-fly, who is by nature almost ephemeral, — who rises up from the bottom of the shallows, sj^reads its light wings, and flits in the sunbeam in enjoyment of its new existence, — no sooner descends to the surface of the water to deposit its eggs, than the unfeeling fish at one fell spring numbers him prematurely with the dead. You see, then, what a wretch a fish is ; no ogre is more blood- thirsty, for he will devour his nephews, nieces, and even his own children, when he can catch them ; and I take some credit for having shown him up. Talk of a wolf, indeed, a lion, or a tiger ! Why these are all mild and saintly in comparison with a fish. When did any one hear of j\Iessrs. Wolf, Lion, and Co. eating up their grandchildi'en ? Wliat a bitter fright must the smaller fry live in ! They crowd to the shallows, lie hid among the weeds, and dare not say the river is their own. I relieve them of their apprehensions, and thus become popular with the small shoals. When we see a fish quivering upon dry land, he looks so helpless without arms or legs, and so demure in ex- pression, adding hypocrisy to his other sins, that we naturally pity him ; then kill and eat him with Hervey sauce, perhaps. Our pity is misjilaced, — the fish is not. There is an immense trout in Loch Awe in Scotland, which is so voracious, and swallows his own species with such avidity, that he has obtained the name of Salmo ferox. I pull about this unnatural monster till he is tired, land him, and give him the coup de grace. Is this cruel ? Cruelty " should be made of sterner stuff." G 2 84 CURIOUS PREDICAMENT. There is a certain spurious sort of humanity going about that I cannot understand. Thus I know a lady who will not eat game, because, she says, shooting is a cruel amusement ; but she is very much addicted to fowls, and all domestic poultry, feeding them one day, and eating them up the next, with treacherous alacrity and amiable perseverance. It wovild be more candid in her, therefore, to say to us sportsmen, like the fox in the fable, — " Go, but be moderate in your food ; A pheasant too might do me good." " I once saw," says the learned and accomplished Dr. Gillespie, " one of these all-devouring fish in a curious predicament. In fishing, or rather strolling, within these few years, Avith a rod in one hand and a book in the other, so as to alternate reading and fishing, as the clouds came and went, I observed a great many June- flies, at which the fish were occasionally rising, and which at the same time were picked up by the swallows, as they skimmed over the surface of the still water. It so happened that a trout from beneath, and a swallow from above, had fixed their affections upon the same yellow-winged and tempting fly. Down came the swallow, and up came the open mouth of the fish ; into which, in pursuit of his prey, the swallow pitched his head. The struggle was not long, but pretty severe ; and the swallow was once or twice nearly immersed, wings and all, in the water, before he got himself disentangled from the sharp teeth of the fish." It is true that the trout had no intention of encountering the bird ; but every one knows that pike will pull young ducks under the water, and devour them. " The Tay trout," says John Crerar (I copy from A CAT FISH. 85 his MS.), " lives in that river all the year round. It is a large and yellow fish, with a great mouth, and feeds chiefly on salmon spawn, moles, mice, frogs, &c. A curious circumstance once happened to me at Pulney Loch. One of my sons threw a live mouse into it, when a large trout took the mouse down mimediately. The boy told me what had happened ; so I took my fishing rod, which was leaning against my house close to the loch, and put a fly on. At the very first throw I hooked a large trout, landed it, and laid it on the walk : in two seconds the mouse ran out of its mouth, and got into a hole in the wall before I could catch it." Thus far John Crerar. " The mouse that is content with one poor hole Can never be a mouse of any soul." I believe every author on the subject, from the time of dear Isaak Walton to the present day, has taken some pains to vindicate the amusement of angling. For this purpose they have quoted men eminent for humanity, illustrious for science, and famed for high achievement — philosophers, warriors, divines, — who have been dear lovers of the sport.* But does it require this \an- dication? For myself, far from being surprised that distinguished men have delighted in fishing, I only wonder that any man can be illustrious who does not * When Sir Humphrey Davy was at Gisburn, the late Lord Ribblesdale took him to see the celebrated Gorsdale Rocks, ex- pecting they would astonish and interest him, and call forth some very learned remarks ; but the great philosopher noticed only the stream beneath them, which he scrutinised minutely, saying he was sure there were no fish in it, or he shoidd have discovered them. G 3 86 FACETIOUS WHALE. practise either angling or field sports of some sort or another. They all demand skill and enterprise. If you ask me to reconcile angling to reason, you may possibly distress me. It is an instinct, a passion, and a powerful one, originally given to man for the preser- vation of his existence. The waters as well as the land yield forth their increase. In the joyless regions of the north, when the bear famishes on the iceberg, and the gaunt Avolf howls amongst the snow-drifts, the miseral)le tenant of the land stalks along the desolate shores, and with his javelin, or hooks of bone, acquires by his rude slcill a precarious subsistence for his family. Everlasting winter has stamped her iron foot upon the soil : the snow whitens all interminably, except where tlic blasts drive it from the face of the bleak rocks ; and without this resource he must perish, — he and his sad family together. Even so it is ordained from above. Thrice happy are we, who live in a more genial climate, and who inherit the instinct given to our less fortunate fellow-creatures, and exercise it not from hard necessity, but as a means of recreation. Man being thus evidently destined to fish, let us consider the style of thing that is likely to give him the most gratification. When I read of the whale fishery, and of that animal running out a mile of rope, for an instant my thoughts were bent on the seas of Greenland ; but I was taken aback by the frontispiece of Captain Scoresby's enter- taining narrative, which represents his boat thrown aloft in the air by a playful jerk of a whale's tail, and all the crew tumbling seaward in very sprawling and unstudied attitudes. Xow this is a sort of adventure HAERY OTTER — PASTORAL. 87 which I do not covet myself, or recommend others to seek. In such case, perhaps, the heroes of the harpoon might be caught at their descent by some ravenous shark; and unless people have a curiosity about the construction of that animal's intestines for the sake of scientific purposes, a visit to his interior would be useless, and I think imprudent. Besides, whale fishery is a sort of unsavory butchery, which does not suit all tastes. We will take leave, therefore, to discard it at once. The truth is, that I like no sea fishing whatever, being of opinion that it requires little skill ; neither do I enjoy sailing in the salt element, for very particular reasons relating to health. But my mind is full of solemn thoughts as I stand on the sounding shore, and see the gallant vessel pass away into the great desert of waters, till her misty hull rests lonely in the horizon. Then, as shades of night set in, and as she fades in the general gloom, I meditate on the perils of storm and battle, and all the adventurous scenes her crew may encounter, for good or for evil, — far, far away from the land of their affections. " Xos patriam fiiginms, nos duloia linquimus arva ; Nos patriam fugiinus." No ; the wild main I trust not. Rather let me wander beside the banks of the tranquil streams of the warm South, " in yeUow meads of asiDhodel," w^hen the young spring comes forth, and all nature is glad; or if a wilder mood comes over me, let me clamber anions: the steeps of the Nortli, beneath the shaggy mountains, where G 4 88 PURCHASE OF IIOKSES. the river comes raging and foaming everlastingly, wedging its way through the secret glen, Avhilst the eagle, but dimly seen, cleaves the winds and the clouds, and the dun deer gaze from the mosses above. There, amongst gigantic rocks, and the din of mountain torrents, let me do battle with the lusty salmon, tiU I drag him into day, rejoicing in his bulk, voluminous and vast. But, alas ! we run riot. Let me now set forth by what- chance I became a fisher for salmon. Dininjj one auspicious day with a friend in London, after a sultry morning gratifying to nothing but a lizard or a serpent, — the town hot, still, and deserted, as the ruins of Pompeii, — we turned from the base thraldom to which we had subjected ourselves, and resolved to wander over the blue hills of Scotland ; " for we had heard of grouse-shooting, and we longed to follow in the field some lusty heath-cock.'''' It was Wednesday. On Friday we would depart, that was certain ; for we were young and ardent. Our travelling means were not very ricli : they consisted of a curricle with one horse (his companion having died lately), and a tilbury without any. But the next day there was to be a sale at Tat- tersall's, which all juveniles delight in ; so away we went to the hammer, rejoicing in our soi disant judgment, and purchased two animals most indubitably of the horse species. My friend accommodated himself with a chestnut, I with a mottled grey ; and it would be dif- ficult to say which of the two had the best bargain. Now it chanced that these two nags never had harness on their backs from the time of their foalhood ; but this did not interest us in the least : they had it on soon at HORSES DISSENT. 89 all events, aU at the door of Thomas's Hotel, Berkeley- Square. The chestnut shone as off-horse in the curricle, the grey was resplendent in the tilbury. As for the start, I cannot boast much of that, — kicks, plunges, rear- ings to match. There was evidently some misunder- standing. My feUow-traveller, wheeling round in spite of " curb or rein," passed me in an opposite direction. My thoughts were intent on Davies Street : the grey dif- fered with me widely in opinion, and was ambitious of the Square ; round which (if I may use the expression) he galloped with unnecessary haste, till he met my fel- low-traveller at the bottom, and we passed each other in grand style, our nags being considerably animated by the " lumbering of the wheels." Not once alone did tliis happen ; and before our coursers could be gained over to our opinion. Charing Cross possessed the curricle, and Hanover Square could boast of the tilbury. Our skill might reasonably be questioned — our perseverance could not ; for before midnight we rallied, and urged our re- luctant beasts to the dulness of Stilton. From hence- forth every thing went on smoothly with them ; except that the chestnut died of the distemper, and the grey fell out of a crazy boat into Loch Lomond, ran away some time afterwards, overturned the vehicle, broke my unfortunate servant's leg, and lamed liimself for life. We journeyed on to Selkirk in juvenile mood. From hence my friends went to Edinburgh, where I agreed to join them. And now comes the point — what made me, Harry Otter, a fisher for salmon ? Why thus it was, — I went forth, after my arrival at the aforesaid town, at the hour of prime. I asked no questions, for I cannot endure 90 THE ILLUSTRIOUS HIGGINBOTHAM. to hear beforehand what sort of sport I am likely to have. Sober truth is sometimes exceedingly distressing, and brings one's mind to a lull ; it puts an end to the sublimity of extravagant speculation, which I hold to be the chief duty of a sportsman. So, as I said, I asked no questions ; but I saw the river Ettrick before me taking her free course beneath the misty hills, and, brushing away the dew-drops with my steps, I rushed impatiently through the broom and gorse with torn hose and smarting legs, till I arrived at the margin of that wild river, where the birch hung its ringlets over the waters. Out came my trusty rod from a case of " filthy dowlass." Top varnished it was, and the work of the famous Higginbotham : not he the hero of an hundred engines, " who was afeard of nothing, and whose fire- man's soul was all on fire ; " but Higginbotham of the Strand, who was such an artist in the rod line as never appeared before, or has ever been seen since. " He never joyed since the price of hiccory wood rose," and was soon after gathered to the tomb of his fathers. I look upon him, and old Kirby the quondam malver of hooks, to be two of the greatest men the world ever saw ; not even excepting Eustace Ude, or Michael Angelo Bonarotti. But to business. The rod was hastily put together ; a beautiful new azure line passed through the rings; a casting line, made like the waist of Prior's Emma, ap- pended, with two trout flies attached to it of the manu- facture even of me, Harry Otter. An eager throw to beg-in with : round came the flies intact. Three, four, five, six throws — a dozen : no better result. The fish were A FIVE-POUNDER. 91 stem and contemptuous. At length some favourable change took place in the clouds, or atmosphere, and I caught sundry small trout ; and finally, in the cheek of a boiler, I faii-ly hauled out a two-pounder. A jcAvel of a fish he was — quite a treasure all over. After I had performed the satisfactory office of bagging him, I came to a part of the river which, being contracted, rushed forward in a heap, rolling with great impetuosity. Here, after a little flogging, I hooked a lusty fellow, strong as an elephant, and swift as a thunderbolt. How I was agi- tated say ye who best can tell, ye fellow tyros ! Every moment did I expect my trout tackle, for such it was, to part company. At lengtn, after various runs of dubious result, the caitiff began to yield ; and at the expiration of about half an hour, I wooed him to the shore. lATiat a sight then struck my optics ! A fair five-pounder at the least ; not fisherman's weight, mark me, but such as would pass muster with the most conscientious lord mayor of London during the high price of bread. Long did I gaze on him, not without self-applause. All too large he was for my basket ; I therefore laid the darling at full length on the ground, under a birch tree, and covered over the precious deposit with some wet bracken, that it might not suffer from the sunbeam. I had not long completed this immortal achievement ere I saw a native approaching, armed with a prodigious fishing rod of simple construction guiltless of colour or varnish. He had a belt round his waist, to which was fastened a large wooden reel or pirn, and the line passed from it through the rings of his rod : a sort of Wat Tinlinn he was to look at. The whole affair seemed so 92 KIND OBSERVATIONS. primitive, — there was such an absolute indigence of or- nament, and poverty of conception, tliat I felt somewhat fastidious about it. I could not, however, let a brother of the craft pass unnoticed, albeit somewhat rude in his attire ; so, " What sport," said I, " my good friend ? " " I canna say that I hae had muckle deversion ; for she is quite fallen in, and there wull be no good fishing till there comes a spate." Now, after this remark, I waxed more proud of my success ; but I did not come down upon him at once with it, but said somewhat slyly, and with mock modesty, — " Then you tliink there is not much chance for any one, and least of all for a stranger like myself." " I dinna tliink the like o' ye can do muckle ; though I will no say but ye may light on a wee bit trout, or may be on a happening fish. That's a bonny little wand you've got ; and she shimmers so with varnish, that I'm thinking that when she is in the eye o' the sun the fish will come aneath her, as they do to the blaze in the water." Sandy was evidently lampooning my Higginbotham. I therefore replied, that she certainly had more shining qualities than were often met with on the northern side of the Tweed. At this personality, my pleasant friend took out a large mull from his pocket, and, applying a copious quantity of its contents to his. nose, very politely responded — " Ye needna fash yoursel to observe aboot the like o' her ; she is no worth this pinch o' snuff." He then very courteously handed his mull to me. " Well," said I, still modestly, " she will do well A TKOUT NOT A FISH. 93 enough for a bungler like me." I was trolling for a compliment. " Ay, that will she," said he. Though a little mortified, I was not sorry to get him to this point ; for I knew I could overwhelm him with facts, and the more diflSdently I conducted my- self the more complete would be my triumph. So laying down my pet rod on the channel, I very deliberately took out my two-pounder, as a feeler. He looked par- ticularly well ; for I had tied up his mouth, that he might keep his shape, and moistened him, as I before said, with soaked fern to preserve his colour. I fear I looked a little elate on the occasioa ; assuredly I felt so. " There's a fine fish now, — a perfect beauty ! " " Houte-toute ! that's no fish ava." " No fish, man ! Wliat the deuce is it, then ? Is it a rabbit, or a wild duck, or a water-rat ? " " Ye are joost gin daft. Do ye no ken a troot when ye see it ? " I could make nothing of this answer, for I thought that a trout was a fish * ; but it seems I was mistaken. However, I saw the envy of the man ; so I determined to inflict him with a settler at once. For this purpose I inveigled him to where my five- pounder was de- posited ; then kneeling down, and proudly removing the bracken I had placed over him, there lay the monster most manifest, extended in all his glory. The light, — * Salmon, salmon trout, and bull trout alone, are called Jish in the Tweed. If a Scotchman means to try for trout, he does not say " I am going a fishing,'''' but " I am going a trouting." 94 A SUPPOSITION. the eye of the hindscape, — before whose brilliant sides Kunjeet Sing's diamond, called " the mountain of light," would sink into the deep obscure ; — dazzled with the magnificent sight, I chuckled in the pleni- tude of victory. This was unbecoming in me, I own, for I should have borne my faculties meekly ; but I was young and sanguine ; so (Iwrresco refer ens) I gave a smart turn of my body, and, placing an arm akimbo, said, in an exulting tone, and with a scrutinis- ing look, " There, what do you think of that?" I did not see the astonishment in Sawny's face that I had anticipated, neither did he seem to regard me with the least degree of veneration ; but, giving my pet a shove with his nasty iron-shod shoes, he simply said, " Houte ! that's a wee bit gilse." This was laconic. I could hold no longer, for I hate a detractor ; so I roundly told him that I did not think he had ever caught so large a fish in all his life. " Did you, now ? — own." " I suppose I have." " Suppose ! But don't you know ? " " I suppose I have." " Speak decidedly, yes or no. That is no answer." " Well, then, I suppose* I have." And this was the sum total of what I could extract from this nil admirari fellow. A third person now joined us, whom I afterwards discovered to be the renter of that part of the river. He had a rod and tackle of the selfsame fashion with the * Suppose^ in Scotch, docs not imply a doubt, but denotes a cer- tainty. DUMB-FOUNDERED. 95 apathetic man. He touched his bonnet to me ; and if he did not eye me with approval, at least he did not look envious or sarcastic. " Well, Sandy," said he to his piscatorial friend, my new acquaintance, " what luck the morn ? " *' I canna speecify that I hae had muckle ; for they hae bin at the sheep-washing up bye, and she is foul, ye ken. But I hae ta'en twa saumon, — ane wi' Xancy*, and the ither wi' a Toppyf, — baith in Faldon-side Biu:n fut." And twisting round a coarse linen bag which w^as slung at his back, and which I had supposed to contain some common lumber, he drew forth by the tail a never- ending monster of a salmon, dazzling and lusty to the view ; and then a second, fit consort to the first. Could you believe it ? One proved to be fifteen pounds, and the other twelve ! At the sudden appearance of these whales I was shivered to atoms : dumb-foundered I was, like the Laird of Cockpen when ]\Irs. Jean refused the honour of his hand. I felt as small as Flimnap the treasurer in the presence of Gulliver. Little did I say ; but that little, I hope, was becoming a youth in my situation. I was now fau-ly vaccinated. By dint of snuff and whiskey, I made an alliance with the tenant of the water ; and being engaged for that year to join my friends at Edinburgh, and go on a shooting excursion to the Hebrides and the north of Scotland, I resolved to revisit the Tweed the smnmer follow^ing. * A flv so' called from Nancy Dawson, who was born on the Tweed, near Little Dean Tower. I The Toppy will be described hereafter. 96 • BIELROSE. It was the above incident that regulated my residence, in a great measure, for above twenty years of my life. A year had rolled on since this my first excursion to the North, and I, HaiTy Otter, was again seated in an open vehicle, enriched with fishing rods, both of small and of ample dimensions ; I must say exceedingly ample. The stanch Arno lay at my feet ; nor was I deficient in a gun, such as Manton used to turn out in that age of flint. My attendant, or groom, was of the freshest fashion, — a youth newly hired. John, who was whilom in my service, understood the arts of travelling better than this man. But, alas ! John was a backslider ; for when I asked him if he had any objection to go to Scotland, " Pray, sir," said he, *' is that the country as is infested with eagles ? " I candidly confessed that there certainly were birds of that description there. ** Then, I am sorry, sir, but I must beg leave to decline going," was his valorous reply. Tedious it were to recount the dawdling of a long journey performed by the same man and the same horses. I wull not therefore utter such an infliction. It is quite enough to say, that in the end I ensconced myself in an hostel in the little town of IMelrose : inn, properly so called, there was none, for Melrose was then unsung. It was late, and I looked forth on the tranquil scene from my window. The moonbeams played upon the distant hill-tops, but the lower masses slept as yet in shadow ; again the pale light catched the waters of the Tweed, the lapse of whose streams fell faintly on the ear, like the murmuring of a sea-shell. In front rose up the mouldering abbey, deep in shadow ; its pinnacles, and A SLIGHT MISTAKE. 97 buttresses, and light tracery, but dimly seen in the solemn mass. A faint light twinkled for a space among the tombstones ; soon it was extinct, and two figures passed off in the shadow, who had been digging a arrave even at that late hour. As the night advanced, a change began to take place. Clouds heaved up over the horizon ; the wind was heard in murmurs ; the rack hurried athwart the moon ; and utter darkness fell upon river, mountain, and haugh. Then the gust swelled louder, and the storm struck fierce and sudden against the casement. But as the morrow dawned, though the rain-drops still hung upon the leaf, the clouds sailed away, the sun broke forth, and all was fair and tranquil. The fisherman was sent for express. His apparel may be taken as a general sample of the garb of the piscator on that river, where " Flora discloses her beauties " par excellence. A hat with salmon flies round the crown, the loop of each gut being passed over the head of a pin stuck into the said hat, and the barb of the hook fastened into the felt. The bonnet on such occasions is laid aside. A short coat or jacket ; waistcoat according to fancy ; blue pantaloons ; and a pair of colossal shoes, studded with splatter-headed nails. " Well, Wattie, I am glad you are come ; for you shall see me catch a dozen salmon to-day." " You mun be a warlock then ; for the deil a mon atween Bolside and Kelso, beside yoursel, wuU tak ae saumon the day. If ye were even to throw the * Lady of * The Flower of Yarrow, married to Scott of Harden. H 98 WATER W.VXING. Mertoun into the water, they wud na look at her ; for the storm cam from the wast last nigcht ye ken, and she * wull be waxing the morn ; but we can gang doon to her and see." Down we accordingly went, and she was decidedly waxing, he said. All this was a mystery to me at that time ; but I learned from him that when the river is about to flood, the rain that has fallen near its sources comes pouring down from the gulleys and di'ains, and propels the clear water before it, which then climbs the dry stones of the channel, exhibiting a convex surface, like wine in a glass filled to the brim. This eiFect cannot be perceived where the river is in quick motion ; but in the little bays and pools that are here and there in the channel, it is very visible: the water will rise to some height before it is in the slightest degree discoloured, and this in proportion to the quantity of rain that has fallen near the sources; so that a stranger would not notice the change. In strong spates it is afterwards of a reddish cast, and fines by degrees into a porter colour, which gets clearer and clearer till it resumes its wonted transpai'ency. It must be noted that I speak with reference to the Tweed only ; for it is obvious that every river is coloured somewhat differently, according to the nature of the soil from which, and through which, it flows. Thus the Tay partakes much of the dark moss and peat colour ; and on part of the Inver- ness coast, where some of the rivers come from a hard stony soil, they are never much discoloured, or, if dis- * The Tweed, like a ship, is always called sJie^ the feminine gender giving it its due consequence. WALTER THE BOLD. ^9 coloured, in a different manner. Thus the fisherman is kept two or thi-ee days from his sport. And he may as well go home when the waxing begins, though tlie water is clear, and the rise is imperceptible, except in the way I have mentioned ; for it is a singular truth that the salmon will not take the fly into his mouth when this change takes place, though he will often rise to it, and leap over it. This fact is so well known, that no experienced person on the Tweed thinks of fishing during such an occurrence. This waxing commences sooner or later, according to the violence or quantity of the rain that has fallen, and the situation where the storm breaks. In a moderate spate, with a westerly wind, it is seen at Melrose about ten or twelve hours after the rain, more or less. If the wind is very violent, also, the water which is blown out of the lakes will make the river rise slightly ; but in that case no change of colour will afterwards take place. " Ye can no fish the day ; so I wud hae ye advised to gang after the patrigs." So indeed I did, auspice Wattie, who, to my surprise, seemed somewhat loth to attend me. We found birds — Amo stood — we shot to the top of our bent ; and Wattie would have marked weU, but for one failing, which, lover as he was of the sport, he could not over- come. This failing, to call it by the mildest name, was an apprehension of evil, wliich possessed him to that absurd degree that he sculked astern, and lay upon the ground the moment he expected a shot to be fired ; and I verily believe that he stopped his ears also. Once, when a covey spread beautifully amongst somoi gorse, II 2 100 EILDON HILLS. for a space he eluded iny vit^ion, and when the firini^ ceased, I detected liim in his form couched between two blocks of granite ; " for he kent," he said, " that it was no canny to dander aboot, and disturb the patrigs." And I think this was judicious ; but it did not seem to account for the paleness of his complexion. My bag was now sufficiently full ; and in returning to the hotel I noticed the form of the Eildon Hills, which, we have since been credibly informed, were cloven in tlu-ee by the art of gramarye. It was then that I discovered that my companion's mind was com- pletely subdued by superstition. " Thae hills are pleasant to the view," said he ; " and it is the custom on the seventh day for people to ascend the middle one, and enjoy the prospect. On the last Sabbath I gaed up ; and instead of the hill being throng as usual, I fund mysel alone, and when I was near the tap a sudden mirkness cam owre me, and I sat doon on the sod in a cauld sweet. Then I cast my een up ; and I saw, as plain as I see ye the noo, twa men houking a grave by the light of a torch ; and ither men joined them, walking twa by twa, wi' pale lights. And when they cam to the grave, they gaed to the far side of it ; and an auld wife cam in front wi' a lang wliite stick in her hand, and a light like a star a tap o' it : she had an awfu' beard, and beckoned me to the grave. Ou it was dreadfu' ! I believe I swooned away, as it was rigcht I should ; and when I cam to mysel, all was vanishit, and it was as mirk as pick. And a' this day I thoucht that your gun was the instrument that was to pit me intill that grave." CHAP. V. " And far beneath in lustre wan Old Melros' rose, and fair Tweed ran." Lay of the Last Minstrel. My first visit to the Tweed was before the Minstrel of the North had sung those strains which enchanted the *H 3 102 COURSE OF THE KIVEK. world, and attracted people of all ranks to this land of romance. The scenery therefore at that time, unassisted by story, lost its chief interest ; yet was it all lovely in its native charms. What stranger just emerging from the ano;ular enclosures of the South, scored and subdued by tillage, would not feel his heart expand at the first sight of the heathery mountains, swelling out into vast proportions, over which man has had no dominion ? At the dawn of day he sees, perhaps, the mist ascending slowly up the dusky river, taking its departure to some distant undefined region ; below the mountain range his sight rests upon a deep and narrow glen, gloomy with woods, shelving down to its centre. What lies hid in that mysterious mass the eye may not visit ; but a sound comes down from afar, as of the rvishing and din of waters. It is the voice of the Tweed, as it bursts from the melancholy hills, and comes rejoicing down the sunny vale, taking its free course thi'ough the haugh, and glittering amongst sylvan bowers, — swelling out at times fair and ample, and again contracted into gorges and sounding cataracts, — lost for a space in its mazes behind a jutting brae, and reappearing in dashes of light through bolls of trees opposed to it in shadow. Thus it holds its fitful course. The stranger might wander in the quiet vale, and, far below the blue sum- mits, he might see the shaggy flock grouped upon some sunny knoll, or straggling among the scattered birch trees ; and, lower down on the haugh, his eye per- chance might rest awhile on some cattle standing on a tongue of land by the margin of the river, with their dark and rich brown forms opposed to the brightness of ABBOTSFORD. 103 the waters. All these outward pictures he might see and feel ; but he could see no farther : the lore had not spread its witchery over the scene, — the legends slept in oblivion. The stark moss-trooper, and the clanking stride of the warrior, had not again started into life ; nor had the light blazed gloriously in the sepulchre of the wizard with the mighty book. The slogan swelled not anew uj)on the gale, resounding through the glens, and over the misty mountains ; nor had the minstrel's harp made music in the stately halls of Newark *, or beside the lonely braes of Yarrow. Since that time I have seen the cottage of Abbots- ford with its rustic porch, lying peacefully on the haugh between the lone hiUs ; and have listened to the wild rush of the Tweed as it hurried beneath it. As time progressed, and as hopes arose, I have seen that cottage converted into a picturesque mansion, with every luxury and comfort attached to it, and have partaken of its hospitality : the unproductive hills I have viewed covered with thriving plantations, and the whole aspect of the country ci\'ilised, without losing its romantic character. But, amidst all these revolutions, I have never perceived any change in the mind of him who made them, " the choice and master-spirit of the age." There he dwelt in the hearts of the peoj^le, diffusing life and happiness around liim : he made a home beside the border river, in a country and a nation that have derived benefit from his presence, and consequence from his genius. From his chambers he looked out upon * The tower of Newark stands near Bowhill. H 4 104 A CHALLENGE. the grey ruins of the abbey, and the sun which set in splendour beneath the Eildon Hills. Like that sun, his course has been run ; and though disastrous clouds came across him in his career, he went down in unfading glory. These golden hours, alas! have long passed; but often have I visions of the sylvan valley, and its glittering waters, with dreams of social intercourse. Abbotsford, Mertoun, Chiefswood, Huntley Burn, AUerley, — when shall I forget ye ! But, to our humble business. The swell of the river had been trifling, and it would be fit to fish on the morrow. The later in the day, said Walter the Bold, the better ; so I fidgetted away the early part of the morning, and hauled over my London tackle, which proved unseemly to the sight of the Scotchman. The flies, he said, were dressed like dancing dogs ; but my rod, he owned, was fine. At last we started. We had about two or three miles to go to the upper cast, called the " Carry-wheel." As I neared it, and saw the sweep of the gallant river, I stepped out in eagerness till I came to the top of a steep covered with wood, gorse, and broom; then I dashed down the rocks, and found myself on the channel, with the rush of a glorious salmon cast before me. Think of this, ye gudgeon fishers ! The rod was put together in haste, — out came the London book ; and whilst I selected that misnomer a metropolitan salmon fly, a huge fish sprang out of the water before me, bright and lusty. What a challenge ! In my agitation the flies got entangled ; — confusion worse confounded beset me. The hooks stuck into my quivering fingers, and then a puff" of wind scattered them abroad HIGGINBOTHAM BROKE. 105 in various directions. To crown all, Walter kept me in a perspiration by making, as if he would throw for the fish, which, by anticipation, I considered as my pro- perty. At length I collected my senses, and my flies also ; and it is a wonder that I did so, as the said fish conti- nued his gambols, and repeatedly claimed my attention. Now then for it. The cast being narrow at the throat, I began with a short line, which I kept length- ening as it got wider; for so it became me. I came now, step by step, to the spot where I expected to do for the fish. Excited as I was, I flung with spirit ; but the fly alighted not upon the wave ; far from it ; it attached itself most perfectly to a birch-tree in my rear, and crack went my top-varnished Higginbotham. Thus I was at once discomfited almost in the arms of victory. Being totally driven from my propriety, I cannot be answerable for what I said or did : something very sublime it was, no doubt; but let that pass. Cer- tain it was that each particular hair of my head stood an end with horror. As I had spare tops to my rod, I soon set all to rights again. But throw, and throw as I would, the salmon woidd not " come and be kUled ; " so I gave up the unreasonable brute at last as unattainable. Nor could the Scotchman make any hand of him afterwards. In fishermen's language, / had set him dow?i. The tail of the cast now grew broader, and it was necessary to wade ; so in I went, " accoutred as I was ; " that is to say, in light, flimsy walking shoes, without nails. I soon perceived that the wet stones were slip- pery and treacherous beyond endurance, and that my shoes had no adhesive qualities. My untutored feet took 106 AN ILL-NATURED TWIST. no hold, and I floundered about in the superlative de- gree, quite innocent of a due balance. At length, joyous to relate, I saAV a break in the water, and the switch of a fish's tail : I struck, and found I had him fast. As for playing him, I did no such thing ; on the contrary, I honestly confess that he played me, and had all along the best of it too, — for I could not keep my footing. I swayed like a pendulum, only more un- evenly, till down I went from a treacherous stone, which joggled under my step, and tilted me in about middle deep. Being thus sufficiently humid, I beat a retreat as soon as I was able, and backed out on the channel: arrived there, I felt the beauty of my new situation, and made certain of a capture. The monster was still strong, and sjirung out of water, as if to show me what a prize I was about to obtain, and I acknowledged his value secretly. He next judged it prudent to give a sudden turn, a sort of ill-natured twist, — an obstinate obliquity of motion that I shall never forget, or forgive : at once my muscles ceased to quiver, — the line lost its strain and sprang aloft in thin air, and the rod was as straight as when it came from the maker's hands. Here was an exposition ! — here was a horror ! To crown all, "Walter stood by and took snuff most provokingly philosopliical, and I thought I detected a half-suppressed smile on liis visage. Raving as I was internally, I still conducted myself with outward decency, particidarly when I found that the fish was lost owing to the bad temper of a London hook, which broke in the animal's jaw ; so that I, Harry Otter, was not to blame after all. I gave one solemn sigh for the death of old Kirby, A PONDEROUS SALMON. 107 whose hooks would not have broken in the mouth of a shark. My Scotch friend now fitted me out with one of his own flies, but desired me not to throw any more in the Carry-wheel ; " for," said he, " as sure as deid, the spirit is against ye : he hampered yer heucks, he broke yer goad and yer flee, and he pulled ye doon in the waters ; and ye never ^vould hae been seen again in this life, gin I hadna cotched ye by the oxter. * Thae that the Kelpie grips seldom rise again ; but nae ither spirit, ye ken, has power in the rinnin' water." Whether I partook of this superstition matters not ; but I left the cast because it was unlucky, which is much the same thing. I was now under the influence of some better spirit of the flood ; for I absolutely landed two gilse of six pounds each in a cast called " The Noirs." Wattie, seeing my rod bent, came up : he said but little ; but that little was the most unqualified abuse of my mis- management. The fact is, I treated the gilse just as I would have treated a trout ; a very base mistake. I bagged them, however, notwithstanding, — thanks to the excellence of the channel. The next cast I came to was called " The Brig-end ; " and here I hooked a fine salmon : he was brave and strenuous, and so ponderous, that it seemed as if my hook had caught hold of a floating Norwegian pine, " fit for the mast of some high ammiral." After various eccentric courses. Master Fish made a sudden and des- perate rush down the river; — out went my line with a * The ai'm. 108 A PROPER MESS. whirring rattle, and cut one of my fingers sharply. I followed as best I might, prancing in the water like a Avar-horsc, with the spray about my ears. Wattie hallood out, and said I know not what ; but the tone of his voice was far from being complimentary. Nearly all my line of a hundred yards was now run out ; when the fish made a sudden turn, crossed to the opposite bank, and coasted up it amongst the rocks. Here again AVattie Avas perfectly wild. " Gang back, I tell ye, — haud up yer gaud, — shorten yer line, — keep aboon him, ye gomrell ! Ou, ye are drownit as sure as deeth ! Pirn in, pirn in ! — pirn out, pirn out ! Gang forrat, gang forrat ! — gang ahint, gang ahint ! " These contradictory exclamations I could have excused, as I believe they were warranted by the sudden turns of the fish ; but the fellow had absolutely the temerity to attempt to take my rod from me, Avhereat I lashed out behind, and gave him sundry kicks, as strong and hearty as could be managed Avith my degenerate shoes. I did shorten my line a little, however ; but the water &c. pressed against it so heavily that I could not extricate it as I Avished. I had now receded to the shore, and gained, as I thought, the victory. Being resolved to be canny, I fixed my eyes intently upon the point Avhere the line dipped into the Avater, under Avhich I conceived the fish to be ; but to my surprise I caught a glimpse of my playfellow Avith the tail of my eye, springing out of the Avater, and toAving my tackle after him about twenty yards above the spot Avhere I conceived him to be. I Avas in a perfect tremor — ye gods, hoAV I did shake ! But that did not last long, as the line all of a CUT AND DROWNED. 109 sudden vaulted into the air, and streamed abroad like the lithe pennon on a ship-mast, being^at a rude guess, about twenty yards minus of its pristine proportions. This was all magic to me at the time, — magic of the most distressing sort ; but in after days I saw what my error was. I knew that it consisted in giving out too much line at first, which would have been unnecessary, had I stepped back at once on the channel, kept my rod aloft, and ran down the river-side with my fish, still keeping above him. This, as has been seen, I did not do ; but kept deep in the water, where I could make but little way. With a shorter hue, and good footing, I might have kept above my fish when he crossed over and made up the stream, and thus have held the line tight ; but as it was, it hung back in a huge sweep, that would have gone round the foundations of another Carthage, — which sweep, coming in contact with a concealed rock or stone, gave the fish a dead pull, and he broke it incontinently : abiit, evasit, erupit. It was very distressing — very. Now having your line in this untoward position is called being drowned, and the breaking of the tackle in the manner described being cut, — soul-haiTowing, sui- cidical miseries, that no one can properly describe ex- cept Mr. Richard Penn. Here ended my fishing, and in summing up the events of the day I had not much to congratulate my- self upon. I had been guilty of almost every error pos- sible : I broke my hook and my rod ; I was moreover cut and droioned, teclmically speaking. I learned, how- ever, four things : firstly, never to fish in a cast where the Kelpie has his strong-hold ; secondly, to look occa- 110 WADING AGREEABLE. sionally behind me before my throw, where the banks are steep and near ; thirdly, to try the strength of my hook before I use it, not after ; and, fourthly, to get into shoes of a proper consistency, and well studded with nails of Brobdinag dimensions. Take warning, gentle readers, from these disasters, which are recounted for your benefit and instruction. The day following I was more successful ; for I shot twelve brace of partridges, and killed seven salmon in the evening. This I thought good sport, as partridges are scarce by the river side. I rented various houses and large fisheries on Tweed side for about twenty years after this, remaining there not only during the summer months, but sometimes all the year round except close time ; so that my experience reaches to all the methods of catching salmon during the legal time of the year. I shall now proceed to give as good an idea as I can of the sort of thing to be ex- pected by those w^ho are inclined to follow the same amusement, together with such instructions as I would fain hojie may increase their success. And, first, for wading. Wading in the water is not only an agreeable thing in itself, but absolutely necessary in some rivers in the North that are destitute of boats ; and that you may do this in the best possible style, procure half a dozen pair of shoes, with large knob-nails at some distance asunder : if they are too close, they will bring your foot to an even surface, and it will glide off a stone or rock, which in deep water may be inconvenient. Cut some holes in the upper-leathers of your shoes, to give the water a free PROPER CAUTIONS. Ill passage out of them when you are on dry land; not because the fluid is annoying, for we should wrong you to say so, but to prevent the pumping noise you would otherwise make at every step. If you are not much of a triton, you may use fishermen's boots, and keep your- self dry : it is all a matter of taste. When you are wachng through the rapids, step on quickly and boldly, and do not gaze down on the stream after the fashion of Narcissus ; for running waves will not reflect your beauty, but only make your head giddy. If you stop for a moment, place your legs abreast of each other : should you fancy a straddle, with one of them in ad- vance, the action of the water will operate upon both, trip you up, and carry you out to sea. Observe, I am talking of a heavy stream. The body of a man, who probably lost his life in this manner, was found low down the river when I was fishing. I asked John Haliburton, who was then my fisherman, where it came from. " I sup- pose," said he, "it travelled all the way from Peebles."* Avoid standing upon rocking stones, for obvious rea- sons ; and never go into the water deeper than the fifth button of your waistcoat: even this does not always agree with tender constitutions in frosty weather. As you are likely not to take a just estimate of the cold m the excitement of the sport, should you be of a delicate temperament, and be wading in the month of February, when It may chance to freeze very hard, jduII down your stockings, and examine your legs. Should they be black, or even pm-ple. It might, perhaps, be as well to get on dry land ; but if they are only rubicund, you may con- * Peebles was about tweuty-five miles from the spot in (juestion. 112 COUPULENT GENTLEMAN. tinuc to enjoy the water, if it so pleases you. If you go in far enough to throw over the cast, that is suffi- cient ; for, remember, it is not good to have a very long line when a short one will answer your purpose. You will not strike your fish so soon, and a sudden run of his might place you in an awkward predicament when your progress is impeded by wading. It is really refreshing, and does one's heart good, to see how some that are green in the sport will, in the language of stag hunting, " take to soil." I heard of a very fat man from the precincts of Cheapside, who was encountered in the river Shiel, in Inverness-shire, by two gentlemen, — merrier ones than whom " I never passed an hour's talk withal." The corpulent man looked at the water for some time like a child that is going into a cold bath, and does not half like it ; he then broke forth in the following guise : — " I am convinced, gentlemen, that your waders catch most fish. I say, gentlemen, that those who wade are the most successful." His opinion being greatly encouraged, he put forth one foot in the pool ; and not finding the sensation very alarming, for the weather was warm, he walked soberly forward, saying at every step, " Ay, ay, — your Avaders catch the most fish." Now the rock shelving down near the bank, in progressing he was soon up to the hips — " Tendebatque raanus ripaj ulterioris amore ; " but he could not reach the desired spot even then. In this dilemma he looked wistfully at the shore for advice. " How deep should I go ? " said the enter- prising man. One said to the fifth button of your waist- A DAMP GENTLEMAN. 113 coat, and the other to your shirt-collar. He preferred the fifth button ; and soon treading on a faithless stone, fairly toppled head foremost into the pool. His hand relaxed its grasp, and away went the fishing rod down the stream. He huiiself was soon placed out of danger by the gentlemen, — an attention that, considering all things, he was fairly entitled to ; but his rod lay across the river, the butt end opposed in its passage by one rock in the middle of it, and the top by another ; so the weight of the stream bore upon the centre, and snapped it in twain. The corpulent gentleman took all with the greatest good humour ; and as the water streamed from him at all points, as it were from a river god, and as he applied a brandy flask to his mouth, he said only at the intervals between his potations, " I am not quite so sure that your waders catch the most fish ; gentlemen, I say, I have my doubts of it." To the credit of my friends be it spoken, they waded and swam after the two divisions of his rod, which they spliced together for him, and set him going again ; not in the faithless water, but on the trusty shore, which he now seemed to prefer. I cannot in conscience recommend a course of wading to a sedentary man as a new experiment, or even as an old custom revived after a lapse of years ; and this for the following reason. General Gowdie was born on the banks of the Leader-water, which falls into the Tweed about a mile and a half below Melrose, near Fly Bridge. In his youth he was an ardent and expert salmon fisher ; in after life he went out to India, and served honourably there for I 114 FATAL EFFECT OF WADING. forty years. At length, in the decline of life, he was eeizctl with the Swiss passion — an unconquerable yearn- ing to revisit the land of his sires. Night after night he heard in his dreams the murmuring lapse of the Leader as it glided down his native valley; again he reposed in the sunny dell, and thought of " auld lang syne ; " then, when the cheerless morn broke forth, and he found him- self on a vast continent, far away from the land of his fathers, he felt as one cast out of Paradise. Gone were the visions of Ms early scenes and companions ; — lost, long lost, but too well remembered. How distant, alas ! from the bonny copses of Carrol-side ! — how far from the silver waters of the Tweed ! After honourable service he set sail for the shores of Scotland, detemiined to pass the remainder of his days in comparative privacy and tranquillity. I met him soon after his arrival, and gave him some salmon fishing. It was delightful to see how he enjoyed himself : he waded as deep as any of us. And I well remember showing him a favourite seat for a salmon near the point of a cairn : he cast his fly at once in the exact spot to an inch, and threw several times with the same adroitness; not be- cause he expected to raise a salmon, — for he well knew that if a fish did not come at the first dexterous throw, it was useless to cast a second time for him in the same place, — but because he felt great satisfaction at his renewed dexterity, and he was pleased that any one should witness it. Poor fellow ! his happiness did not last long. The habit of wading at his advanced time of life brought on internal disease, which soon ended fatally ; and he only repassed the seas to lay liis bones in the father-land. JOHN, LORD SOMERVILLE. 115 CHAP. VI. " I tell you more : there was a fish taken, A monstrous fish, with a sword by 's side, — a long sword ; A pike in's neck, and a gun in's nose, — a huge gun; And letters of mart in's mouth from the Duke of Florence. Cleanthes. This is a monstrous lie. Tony. I do confess it ; Do you think I'd tell you truths ? " Fletcher's Wife for a Munth. Having set forth the advantages, as well as the risk of wading, in a fair, and I hope a rational light, I will proceed to advise on other matters. In primis, your rod should be proportioned to the size of the river you fish in ; eighteen or twenty feet long. The longer the rod, the greater command you will have over your fish ; for being enabled to keep the line more perpendicular, you can lead him with more ease and security amongst rocks and eddies ; whereas with a short rod you cannot keep enough of your line clear of the water to prevent danger in such places. It is true that the late Lord Somerville, who was an excellent fisherman, used a one-handed trout rod for salmon. He did not, however, do so from choice, but from necessity ; for having once put out his shoulder, he could not manage to throw with a rod of the usual size. He once put this little rod into my hands when we were fishing together in his water ; but, for want of practice, I 2 116 SALMON LINES. I could make little or nothing of it, but I was astonished to see what a long line he himself could throw with it. It must be noted, however, that he fished from a boat in the upper and narrower part of the Tweed, where the channel is excellent, and where there are few bad rocks ; in a large river, abounding in all those natural obstructions which its waters fight with, no human ingenuity could have saved hun from being often cut with such Lilliputian tackle. Your line should be about a hundred or a hundred and twenty or thirty yards, according to the breadth of the river you fish in ; tapering, of course, towards the end. Your gut single, clear, and round. Of such you may make a casting line sufliciently strong for any salmon you will ever encounter in these degenerate days. The colour of your casting line should depend upon the state of the river. Take some thought, therefore, to adapt it accordingly : in doing so, you may fancy that you and the fish have changed places. Whilst you are on dry land your object of comparison is the dark bed of the river, which misleads you of course ; whereas the objects of comparison to the fish, who lies below, are the colour of the sky and the medium of water. If the water then be moss-stained, your gut may be very faintly tinged of the same colour, — very faintly indeed, as all dyes are overdone ; but if the river be clear, do not on any accomit stain your casting line at all. The sky may vary in colour every minute : an attempt to match it, therefore, is out of the question. You may easUy satisfy yourself of the superiority of white over dyed gut, in ordinary cases, by remarking the appearance of both when placed in a tumbler of pure water. A LUCKY CAST. 117 Whatever you do, have nothing to say to multiplying reels : they are apt to betray you In the hour of trial. My first discovery of their insufficiency for heavy fish created some embarrassment at the time. I had a pet multiplier, which ran beautifully, and which I had long used for trout fishing. As it was sufficiently large to contain a salmon liae, I employed it for that purpose also, till it began to get ricketty with the more heavy work. One day, the water being fallen in, and the morning also being sunny, so as to exclude the expect- ation of killing a salmon, I put some trout tackle at the end of my line, which was on the said reel, and began trouting in Bolside-water. In the course of the day a cloud passed before the sun ; and at the same time, as is usually the case, a slight breeze arose and ruffled the surface of the water. I hastened to change my tackle, and substituted a small salmon fly in place of the trout ones : small, because, as I have said, the water was quite fallen in. Though many years have passed over my head since that time, I remember this fly well. His wings were of the clear brown feather from the bittern ; his body of black wool, with a hackle of the same colour ; and his tail of a very pronounced yellow, being made of the feather of a golden pheasant ; red he was in the head, and altogether of a very commendable and alluring aspect. The curl on the water still con- tinuing, I whisked him off gaily. At the very second throw, the pool being somewhat dead, I saw the water heave up, advancing in a wave towards me. I waited patiently for the break, which was a slight one, but pleasant and beauteous to behold. This I knew to be I 3 118 DISORDERED TACKLE. the act of tlie Salmo Salar; and as my line was short, I was, as I before recommended to others. In no hurry to strike ; but fix him I did in due season. He no sooner felt the hook than he began to rebel ; and executed some very heavy runs, which so disconcerted the machinery of my multiplier as almost to dislocate the wheels. The line gave out with starts and hitches, so that I was obliged to assist it with my hands. To wind up it resolutely refused ; so that I was compelled to gather in the line in large festoons when it was necessary to shorten it, and again to give these out as best I could when the fish made a run. Add to this embarrassment that the ground was distressing, there being alder bushes in my rear, which made it impossible for me to retreat and advance by land, by which means I could have humoured the fancies of the fish, so as to obviate in some degree the necessity of giving out and shortening the line. So I had no power whatever over the salmon, which was evidently a very large one. In the course of an hour I made no impression upon him at all, my whole aim being to avoid a break. I never engaged with a more subtle animal. Sometimes he would make the tour of all the neighbouring stones, where he endeavoured, no doubt, to rub the hook out of his mouth ; then he would take a long rest, as if he cared nothing about it. From the cause I have men- tioned my tackle was always in disorder, which kept me in great apprehension. Thus the matter went on for nearly two hours more, still with a very dubious result. At length a stone being thrown in by my attendant at a spot where I could follow along the bank, he put his I AVEIGHT TELLS. 119 head down the river peremptorily, and went oiF like a rocket. I ran with him down the channel, as he skunmed through the shallows and darted through the rough gorges, in evident danger, as I was, of losing him every moment. At length he fairly exhausted himself, and I was able to m'ge him to a sand bank, and lay him on his broadside. The sand bank, however, had a few inches of w^ater running over it, but not sufficient to cover the fish. My attendant, Philip Garrat, had the tact to place himself between the dee]) water and the fish. Then came the struggle. A Wiltshire novice, like the said Philip, could not hold a live salmon with his hands, so he tried to kick liim forward on the dry channel. All this time I hallooed stoutly to liim to take care of the line. My anxiety was extreme ; for the fish was sometimes able to place himself in a swimming posture, and wriggle away near the deep water. In fact, had there been but one inch of water moi*e over the sand bank, he would have*had it all his own way. Philip, aware of the danger, set at him wath redoubled activity, kicking his fastest and best. But the event being still doubtful, he knelt down and grappled with him ; and finding him still slippery and elusive, he cast himself bodily upon liim, and fixed him with his weight at once : '^ Toto certatum est corpore regni." So thought he of Macedonian appellation ; but he did not express himself in such terms, being a man of no clerk-like capacity : whatever he might have thought, he only said, looking up Avith a grin of delight and with a Wiltshire accent, " I got un, — be hanged if I ha'nt." I 4 120 TRTUMPIIANT AT LAST. A cold bath for a few minutes more or less is of no consequence ; so I made him remain a space, like -^tna pressing upon the shoulders of Enceladus, till I came up and griped the huge salmon by the tail, and Avalkcd to dry land with him, triumphant. I was nearly three hours in killing this fish, all owing to the derangement of a multiplying reel ; and as this contrivance, though useful enough in our trout rivers, will by no means answer with very large fish, I have mentioned the above occurrence in detail as a warning to others. After this time I caused to be made some large single reels, nicely constructed, so as to give the line out evenly, and not run too slackly ; and I directed that the cylinders should be of a very ample circumference, which gave me the same advantage that a multiplying reel has with the usual cylinder. William Purdie at that time rented the Bolside- water, which runs by Abbotsford, and in which I caught this fish. His son, then a little boy, happened to pass by when I landed him, and I sent him home to his METROPOLITAN FLIES. 121 father with the salmon ; but it was with extreme dif- ficulty that the little fellow got up the brae, as liis load, which was hung over his shoulders, frequently made him stagger back down the rocks which he had from time to time ascended. That little boy came into my service as fisherman some seasons afterwards, and has lived with me now about eighteen years. He is a capital fly-maker and boatman, and a most valuable servant. Some of liis exploits appear in these pages, he being the identical Charlie Purdie so repeatedly mentioned in them. A great deal of mystery is made on every river as to the flies you should fish with. Thus when a novice ar- rives at his fishing station, he sends for the oracle of the river ; pulls out his book, crammed as closely as a pot of pemmican, and displays before him the various devices of an Eaton, an Ustonson, or a Chevalier. Kotliing dazzled, Donald much admires what one may be, and what the other ; this he rejects as useless, that he laughs to scorn. At length, after having grinned extensively at those tinselled animals called kill devils, he examines some twenty dozen of your best flies ; and, pulUng out one from the number, tells you that might serve well enough if it had different wings, a different body, and a yellow tail. Now all this is overdone ; but I would advise you to acquiesce in the predictions of the said oracle, simply to save the trouble of argument. One thing you may be sure of; namely, that you may as well attempt to make the Tweed run back to its source as to shake his opinions. Now, as there is no month in the year when salmon 122 SALMON FLIES. flics arc made by nature, so no distinction of species need be observed. My rule has been to adapt my fly, both as to colour and size, to the state of the water : a large fly with sober colours for deep and clear w^ater, and a smaller one, equally unassuming, where it is shallower ; in the throat of the cast, and as long as it continues rough, a large fly also ; at the tail of it, where the water runs more quietly and evenly, a smaller one serves the purpose best. Thus you should change your fly in every stream once or twice. A large and rather gaudy fly is preferable when the river is full and dis- coloured, that the salmon, which lie at great depths, may see it ; but I never had any great success with very gaudy flies, either in the Tweed or elsewhere, in clear and low waters. Salmon will rise at them, it is true ; but those that have been long in the w^ater will not take them freely when the river is in the state I have spoken of, though they excite their curiosity, and serve them for playthings. I believe it is the fashion now to think otherwise ; so that in these days a golden pheasant's feathers are in as high estmiation in Scotland as they always have been in Ireland. In tying your flies, you may have some regard to the harmonic colours, as less startling and more natural. You may laugh, if you please, but I would fain think there is something in this. If you know them not, con- sult Sir David Brewster's table of spectral colours in his distinguished " Philosophical Magazine." I have said that there is no animal in nature re- sembling our salmon flics ; but I once caught a fish who was certainly persuaded that he was attacking an animal CHANGE OF FLIES. 123 that he had previously seen flying. This event hap- pened when I was a novice. Walter Ronaldson was attending me, and we were walking by the side of the Elm-icheel in the Pavilion-water. Walter was some way in advance, when I saw a white butterfly fluttering up and down over the water, and a salmon make a fruitless dart at it. It chanced that I had made some large salmon flies with white wings, in imitation of a pattern that Avas formerly the fashion for trout fishing, and was called, I know not why, the coach- man. One of these I immediately looped to my line : the fish, no doubt taking it for the butterfly that he saw flitting above him, came at it at once, and I took him. When he was landed, Walter's astonishment was great when he saw the fly, and he made a dozen imitations of it before he laid his head on the pillow. I should not think that under other circumstances such a fly would be alluring. When a man toils a long time without success, he is apt to attribute his faikire to the using an improper fly ; so he changes his book through, till at last, perhaps, he catches fish. The fly, with which he achieves this, is naturally enough a favourite ever afterwards, and pro- bably without reason : the cause of success might be in the change of air and temperature of the water ; and the same tiling would probably have occurred if he had persevered with the same fly with which lie began. When the night has been frosty, salmon will not stir till the water has received the genial warmth of the day ; and there are a thousand hidden causes of obstruction which we, who are not fish, know notliing about. 124 POWDERED LAWYERS. As an instance, I once fished over a short stream above " The Webbs," in Mertoun-water, without having an offer ; being convinced there were fish in it, I went over it a second time with the same fiij immediately afterwards, and caught two salmon and two gilse. Now if I had changed my fly, as is usual, the success would naturally have been attributed to such change. But, observe, I do not mean to assert that all flies are equally successful, for there must obviously be a pre- ference, however slight ; but I mean merely to say that a failure oftener occurs from atmospheric variations than from the colour of the fly. Yet an occasional change is always advisable, particularly if you have had any offers ; since the fish in so rising, having, perhajis, dis- covered the deception, will not be solicitous to renew their acquaintance with a detected scamp. After all, the great thing is to give the appearance and motion of a living animal. Once, when I was adjusting my tackle on Tweed side, I was accosted by a native fisherman in these words, — " Ye need na fash yersel the day wi' yer lang wand, for I wud na gie a pinch o' snuff for a' that ye'U get ; there are too many jmutliered Imoyrs aboot." Powdered lawyers ! I gazed around me, and did not see a single gentleman of the long robe. What on earth could the man mean ? and what had a powdered lawyer to do with ray sport ? Upon explanation, I found out that he alluded to the numerous puffy white clouds above. Whether the likeness of these to lawyers' wigs was appropriate or not, I leave to those who are learned in similes to de- termine ; but he certainly was right in his main position. FAVOURITE FLIES. 125 If your fish misses the fly in making his offer, wait awhile before you throw a second time ; and if he rises at all, he will come more eagerly for this delay. When he returns to his seat, after the unsuccessful sortie, he will say mentally (for thus do fishes and novelists dis- course), " "VYliat a donkey I was to be so awkward ! By St. Antonio, if he comes again, I'll smash him ! " But if you keep lasliing away at him immediately, as I have seen many fishermen do, — ay, and practised hands too, — he will probably treat you with contempt, and will have no intercourse with your gay deluders for the rest of the day. It is some time, perhaps, since he has taken up his seat in the water, without ever having seen an animal like that which you are so obliging as to tender him : all of a sudden come a swarm of locusts, as it were, one after another over his neb, which astonish and alann him exceedingly. Thus it is apparent, my most excellent, but too persevering friend, that you do not do justice to his sagacity, or instinct, or whatever you please to term it, if you set to work in such an intrusive manner. As in all other rivers, so there are various flies made use of in the Tweed; but the variety consists more, I think, in size than in colour. A large fly, as I have said, for the heavy and deep waters, and a smaller one for the upper part of the river. That is the general system. More minute particulars I have already given. Here are six flies, which I have always found the most successful : I do not mean to say that they are the best that can be used, but only that they are such as I have most confidence in from experience. They were tried 126 FAVOURITE FLIES. by my fisherman Charles Purdie, and in such a manner as to make them cut their way steadily through the water. They are known by different names ; so that when I say to my fisherman give me this, or give me that, mentioning the patronymic, forth it comes, with- out the trouble of searching over the book myself. Two of these flies are of the masculine gender, three of the feminine, and one of the neuter. The masculine are Michael Scott and Kinmont Willie; the feminine, the Lady of Mertoun or the Flower of Yarrow, Meg with the Muckle Mouth in her usual dress, and Meg in her bravery — or, Scottice, braivs. The fly of the neuter gender has been called Toppy from time immemorial. No. 1. Kinmont Willie. Wings - - - Mottled feather from under the whig of a male teal. Head - - . Yellow wool. Body - - - Fur of the hare's ear. End of body - - Red wool. Tail . - - Yellow wool. Round the body - - Black-cock's hackle. I found this fly very successful in the Annan when I lived at Eanmont, from which place it derives its name. No. 2. The Lady of Mertoun. Wings - - - Mottled feather from under the wings of the male teal. Head - . - Crimson wool. Body - - - Water-rat's fur. End of body - - Crimson wool. Tail - - - Yellow wool. Round the body - - Black-cock's hackle. End of body - - A little red hackle. FAVOURITE FLIES. 127 No. 3. Toppij. "\Vings - - Black feather from a turkey tipped with white. Head - - Crimson wool. Body - Black bullock's hair. End of body - Crimson wool. Tail - Yellow wool Body - - Black-cock's hackle. End of body - Small piece of red-cock's hackle. tail No. 4. I will now describe Michael Scott, a most killing wizard. DeUe magiche frodi seppe il gioco." Wings - - - Mottled feather from the back of a drake. Head - - - Yellow wool, with a little hare's fur next to it. BtKly - '^ - Black wool. EndoftKe*ody - Fur from the hare's ear ; next to the hare's ear crimson wool. Tail - - Yellow wool. Round the body - - Black-cock's hackle. End of the body - - Red-cock's hackle. Round the body - - Gold twist, spirally. No. 5. Meg with the Muckle Mouth. Wings - - - From the tail of a brown turkey. Head - - . Crimson wool. Body - - - Yello - sUk. End of body - - Crimson wool. Tail - . - YeUow or orange wool. Round the tail - - Red-cock's hackle. Round the body - - Gold twist ; over it hackle mixed with coloui', as above. ^ 128 A WORTHY PERSON EMBARRASSED. No. 6. Meg in her Braws. Wings - - - Light brown, from the wing of a bit- tern. Head ... Yellow wool. Next the head - - Mottled blue feather from a jay's wing. Body ... Brown wool mixed with bullock's hair. Towards the end of body Green wool ; next to that crimson wool. Tail . - - Yellow wool. Round the body - - Gold twist ; over that cock's hackle, black at the roots and red at the points. Concerning these flies I will note one thing, which is, that if you rise a fish with the Lady of Mertoun, and he does not touch her, give him a rest, and come over him with the Toppy, and you have him to a certainty, and vice versa. This I hold to be an invaluable secret, and is the only change that during my long practice I have found eminently successful. Having now named all things necessary for the sport, I must now advise all fishermen, Cocknies in particular, to provide themselves with plenty of spare tackle before they go felicity hunting ; for in the wilds of Scotland it is not easy to replace any loss that inexperience and ill fortune may occasion. A friend of mind told me a circumstance, by which it appeared that a very worthy person was considerably embarrassed for want of this due precaution. This said friend had been fishing in the river Shiel in Inverness- shire, and was seated on a bank with a large salmon be- fore him that he had just caught. He was eyeing the fish with complacency, and smoking a cigar in all the enjoy- SAGACIOUS ANGLEPw 129 ment of success. Whilst in this tranquil mood, a man suddenly vaulted over the wall of the Shiel bridge ; " And when he had not the least suspicion, Was with him like an apparition." This man he described to me as fresh in his attire. Thin and new were his shoes, — new also was his jacket, new his waistcoat, and novel his pantaloons ; but newest of all was his top-varnished salmon rod, turned out by Eaton : but he was shabbily thatched, his hat being worse than common. His flies, to all appearance, were made by the Turks, — men forbidden by their religion to imitate any of the Avorks of the Creation. As for the man himself, no one could look at him without being put in mind of jMantellini. " Denmition fine pool, sir." a Very fine indeed, sir ; but you will never catch a fish where you are casting at present, because fish do not lie in that bare water." Upon this our man faced round, put his fore finger to his nose, and, with an expression of sagacity and wisdom that I should in vain attempt to describe, said, " Do you see any tiling green in my eyes, sir ? " It was evident such a person was not born to be in- structed, but simply to be admired. My friend, there- fore, left his rod upon the bank, and walked after liim, cigar in mouth, to get some insight into his tactics. Arrived at a better part of the pool, he hooked a fish ; and here it was curious to see the difference of opinion between a Cockney and one who had been bred to the sport. The Cockney was of a yielding disposition, and K 130 VANISHING OF A LINE. judged it advisable to let the fish have his own way ; the result of which was, that he ran out an exorbitant length of line, and was going to a sort of whirlpool amongst the rocks. " Hold him in, hold him in ; if he gets to that eddy, you are done." " Fine fish, sir, fine fish ; fast hooked, sir. Do you see any thing green in my eyes ? I have an opinion of my own, sir." " So has the fish. And now it is all over with you ; for if you had nothing but a dried herring at the end of your line, you would never get it out of that mess. I hope you have another casting line, because you will never see that again." " Fine fish, sir ; fine rod, sir ; fine line, sir ; fast hooked, sir, — fast hooked. Do you see any thing green " He was stopped short in the sentence by an alarming rush of the salmon, who shot forward up the stream, and took out the whole of the line of the consenting party to the tune of 120 yards. Now it is a wholesome rule to make fast the end of the line, by running it through a hole in the cylinder of the reels, and tying some knots at the extremity to secure it ; and as this rule is wholesome, so it has been practised time imme- morial by all sagacious persons, and even by some who are not very sagacious. But there are exceptions to all rules, and our man had neglected this caution ; con- sequently, the line, being all run out, vanished at once through the rings of the rod, and streamed fair and ample below the surface of the Avater. The mermaid may, but that line shall no terrestrial ever see again. I A SLIGHT EMBARKASSMENT. 131 " Demnition hard that, sir. What an extraordinary incident ! Fish well managed, dexterously, artistically. Very odd indeed, sir: beautifully played ; — fine rod, fine hand. Demnition hard, I must say. Now how far must I go to get a line ? " " If you mean to get the same, probably to the middle of the Irish Channel, or the mouth of the Shannon ; but if you seek a new one, which I think would be the most prudent course, walk up to the road, and you will see a mile-stone, which says, * To Inverness 120 miles,' — exactly a mile for every yard of line you have lost, and I am sorry for it." Casting the fly is a knack, and cannot well be taught but by experience : the spring of the rod should do the chief work, and not the labour of your arm. To effect K 2 132 INSTRUCTIONS. this, you should lay the stress as near the hand as pos- sible, and make the wood undulate from that point; which is done by keeping your elbow in advance, and doing something* with your wrist, Avhich, as Mr. Pcnn says, is not very easy to explain. Thus the exertion should be chiefly from the elbow and wrist, and not from the shoulders. You should throw clear beyond the spot where the salmon lie, so that they may not sec the fly light upon the water ; then you should bring the said fly round the stream, describing the segment of a circle taking one step in advance at every throw. In this manner the fish see your fly only, and not the line. It is customary to give short jerks with the fly as you bring it round, something in the manner of minnow fishing, but in a more gentle and easy way ; and I think this manner is the most seducing you can adopt : it sets the wings in a state of alternate expansion and con- traction that is extremely captivating. Salmon will often take your fly on one side of the river when they will not touch it on the other. In high water, the channel side, as a general rule, is the best, and at the cheek of the current ; and you should not be in a hurry to pull your fly into the more bare and still parts of the channel, where the fish will come more cautiously and lazily. In low water it is best to throw over the channel from the rocky side, drawing at first rather quickly, that your fish may take your fly in the current, which is material. In very low water, indeed, when the fish may be said to give over rising, you may try your luck in the rapids by hanging your fly on them ; indeed, you should always let your fly dwell on this sort of water, MATHEMATICA.L ANGLING. 133 or the fish will either lose sight of it, or not choose to follow where you may wish him. All these things are not easily explained in writing, nor, I believe, in con- versation, as will appear from the following example. A friend of mine went with two companions to fish in the river Mora, on the coast of Inverness-shire. One of these two comrades was a young Oxonian, and a novice ; the other was an experienced fisherman. They were all three in one of those Higliland shielings, redolent of peat smoke and whiskey, which is absolute luxury to a thorough-bred sportsman, as being in keeping and character with the nature of his piu'suit. The Oxonian was an excellent person, but, as I have hinted, knew nothing upon earth about sahnon fishing ; so Mr. E. C., who was an adept in the said art, set al30ut in- structing him by word of mouth. The third person of the party happened not to coincide with the excellence of the simple instructions he was giving, and laid it down as an axiom, that it was unpossible to catch a fish, unless your fly was at right angles to your rod. Tliis seemed not at all to be comprehended; and after a little arguing, the said oracle, by way of illustration, took a stick, tied his handkerchief to it, and gave a few throws on the table. " Now," said he, "these are very bad throws, and would never catch a fish." This assertion was ap- plauded, and immediately carried by acclamation. To make a good cast, and keep your fly in the rectangular position," continued the maestro, " you must furl your line thus." So saying, he gave the handkerchief a knowing whisk, which extinguished both the candles. Thus he argued with all his might, feeding the young Oxonian K 3 134 RAISON DEMONSTRATIVE. with scientific maxims, who promised that he would fiirl his line, and fish mathematically. The next morning no one could start with a fairer prospect of sport than the said novice. He was accom- panied by Allan Beg, or Little Allan, because he was told it was quite impossible for him to catch a salmon without his assistance; and he was taught how to kill his fish "par raison demonstrative." But throw as he would, furl as he might, he could by no means manage to keep his fly always at right angles to his rod, al- though he was a most excellent mathematician. At length, after having lost seven favourite flies, and two casting lines, he broke out in unqualified abuse of the system; which so enraged his "gentle brother of the angle," that high words arose, and they were on the point of committing the duello on those very sands where it is said Prince Charles drew up his forces. My friend was asked to act as impartial second to both parties, wliich he consented to, on condition only that they should stand and fire so that the balls might cross at right angles to each other. But " Etes-vous fou," said he to the Oxonian; "de Taller quereller, lui qui entend les angles, et qui sait tuer un saumon par raison de- monstrative ? " At this good humour returned, and each party fished the rest of the day according to the angles that best suited his fancy, without let or argument. Now in holding your fly on a rough stream you must advance your arms, and bring your rod straight across the river, consequently your line hanging straight down the stream may form a right angle at the point of your rod, and so you should work it in this instance ; but in A SPRING SALMON. 135 most other cases I prefer the obtuse angle. As to the argument, " lis avoient ralson tous deux." In hooking a rising fish, it is best to strike a little sideways, that the hook may fasten in the fleshy part of the mouth ; whereas, if you pull straight up, you are apt to encounter the upper or bony part ; or if the fish has not closed his jaws, and fairly turned off, you may pull the fly away from him too soon, to the dis- appointment of both parties. As a proof of this, if it does not appear sufficiently obvious, I ajipeal to any one, who has tried it, to say whether or not it is an easy matter to hook a rising fish, the experimentalist being stationed on a high bridge. Sometimes, however, when a salmon is clean run, and in high glee, you can scarcely miss him, strike which way you will. I remember fishing at the Troughs, under the aus- pices of Rob Kerse, early in the spring, before a clean fish had been caught there that season. I stood over one of those gorges where an immense volume of water, pent up in a narrow passage, rolls furiously between its rocky barriers. Here I fixed myself for a few casts — the rocks being of such a nature that I could not go lower down the river either in a boat or by wading. This cast is called the Clippers, and is In IVIackerston- water. Here, with a line not given out above my rod's length, I hooked a clean salmon that rose close under me. I struck him as he was at the surface of the water : as soon as he felt the hook, he endeavoured to dig downwards. I gave him the butt of my rod, and he bent the whole of K 4 136 TAKEN BY SURPRISE. it in a way that I never saw before, making it in shape, with a slight exaggeration, nearly two thirds of a circle. " Gie him line, gie him line," roared out Kerse and Charlie Purdie, — " od but he'll break ye, mon." Now I knew that if he went down the Clippers amongst the rocks, I should be cut in a moment to a dead certainty; for, as I noted before, I could not follow. So I was determined not to yield at all events, and I held him firm at the surface of the water. In this position he had not half liis natural power, and in less than a minute Charlie cleiked him, and brought him out before he could dig down. Thus he was taken by surprise. He proved to be a clean salmon of ten pounds, and the first that had been caught that season. Now this could not have been done, had not the line been short and the fish almost immediately under me. I remember Kerse (who had before been pressing the necessity of using double or triple gut in such dangerous water) saying, " Ay, that was canny enough ; but if you had not been advised by me, it could not have been done at ony gait." I showed him my casting line, however, which, excepting the first length next the line, was of strong single gut. But he was certainly right in his assertion as to the necessity of very strong tackle in such a sin- gular cast, especially as the river was very full, and the torrent so impetuous that nice tackle was by no means requisite. In a low clear water you must be somewhat dilatory in striking : you often see the heave of the water and a break before the fish has actually seized your fly. Give him tune to turn his head in his way Imck to his seat. TOM PURDIE. 137 to which a salmon always returns after rising at the fly. Tom Purdie gave me an account of a fish that had perplexed him greatly by his non-observance of this rule, as nearly as possible in the following words. He might have used fewer certainly, but Tom was not laconic. " I had," said he, " risen a sawmon three successive days at the throat of Caddon-water fut, and on the fourth day I was determined to bring him to book ; and when he rose as usual, I went up to Caddon Wa's, namely, the pool opposite the ruins of Caddon Lee, where there had been a terrace garden facing the soutli ; and on returning I tried my old friend, when he rose again without touching the heuck : but I got a glimpse o' him, and saw he was a sawmon o' the biggest sort. I then went down the river to a lower pool, and in half an hour came up again and changed my heuck. I began to suspect that having raised the fish so often, I had become too anxious, and given him too little law, — or jerked the heuck away before he had closed his mouth upon it. And as I had a heavy rod and good line, and the castin' line, which I had gotten thrae the Sherra, had three fadom o' pleit gut at the end of it, and the Jlee was buskit on a three plies o' sawmon gut, sae I Avas na feard for my tackle. I had putten a cockle-stane at the side o' the water foment the place where he raise ; forbye I kend fu' weel where he was lyin' : it was at the side o' a muckle blue clint that made a clour i' the rough throat, e'en when the Queed was in a brown flood, as she had been for twa days afore. Aweel, I thought I wad try a plan o' auld Junijierhanli s when he had 138 SALMON CASTING HIS CANTRIPS. raised a sawmon mair nor ance. I keeplt my eyne hard closed when the heuck was commhi owre the place. Peace be here ! I fund as gif I had catched the branch o' an aik tree swingin' and sabbin' in a storm o' wind. Ye needna doobt I opened my eyne ! An' what think ye was the sawmon aboot ? — turnin' and roAvin' doon the tap o' the water owre him and owre him (as ye hae seen a hempie o' a callant row down a green brae side) at great speed, makin' afearfu'jumblin' and splashin', and shakin' the tap o' the wand at sic a rate, that deil hae me but I thocht he wad hae shaken my arms afF at the shouther joints, tho' I said to mysel' they Averc guy firm putten on. I never saw a fish do the like but ane i' the Auld Brig pool in the Darn wick-water. Ijalouse they want to unspin the line ; for a fish has far mair cunnin' and wiles aboot him than mony ane wad think. At ony rate it was a fashions plan this I fell on ; for or he war to the fut o' the pool I was tired o' him and his wark, and sae was he, Ise warrant ye. For when he fand the water turnin' shallow, he wheeled aboot, and I ran up the pool as fast as I could follow him, gien him a' the line I could at the same time ; and when it was just about a' off the pirn, and he was commin into the throat, he wheeled again in a jiffy, and cam straight for my feet as if he had been shot out o' a cannon ! I thocht it was a' owre atween us, for I fand naething at the wand as the line was soommin i' the pool a' the way doon. I was deed sure I had lost him after a' my quirks ; for whan they cast a cantrip o' that kind, it's done to slacken the line to let them draw the heuck out o' their mouths wi' their teethy toung — an' they arc ROBIN HOPE. 139 amalst sure to do sae. But he was owre weel lieuckit, this ane, to work his purpose in that gyse, as ye sal hear ; for when by dint o^ runnin' back thrae the water as fast as I could, and windin' up the line I had brought a bow on the tap o' the rod, I fand the fish had riestit in the deepest part o' the pool, trying a' that teeth an' toung could do to get haud o' the heuck ; and there did he lie for nearly an hour, for I had plenty o' time to look at my watch, and now and then to tak' mony a snuff too. But I was certain by this time that he was fast heuckit, and I raised him again by cloddin stanes afore liim as near as I durst for hittin' the line. But when I got liim up at last there was mickle mair to do than I thocht of; for he ran up the pool and doon the pool I dar' say fifty times, till my feet wur dour sair wi' gangin sae lang on the channel : then he gaed owre the stream a'thegither. I was glad to let him change his gait ony way ; and he gaed down to Glen- benna, that was in "VYhitebank's water, and I wrocht him lang there. To mak' a lang tale short, before I could get at him wi' the gaff, I was baith hungry an' tyrt ; an' after a' he was firm heuckit, in the teughest part o' the body, at the outside o' the edge o' the wick bane. He was a clean sawmon, an' three an' twenty meal pounds." No creature is more capricious than a salmon. One of the Lairds of Makerstoun, many years ago, had a fisherman named Robin Hope, who, like many of his brethren on the Tweed, was an original. Attending his master on a day that was considered quite a killing one, not a fish would stir. " What is the meaning of this. 140 A SALMON SNARED. Robin?" said the Lainl. " Deed, sir, I dinna ken," said Kobin ; " for sometimes they will tak' the thoom o' ycre mitten, if yc would throw it in, and at ithers they wad na look at the Lady o' Makerstoun and a' her braws." Salmon never take well when the weather is about to change ; it is therefore useless to go out when the mer- cury remains at this point. Wlien it first sets in for a continuance of dry weather the fish will rise about your hook, and only break the surface of the water ; but before a flood they will spring clean out of it, for the purpose, perhaps, of filling their air-bladder before travelling. These sportive fellows, however, sometimes get into a scrape l)y being hooked outside. A salmon of ten pounds was caught in the Skurry-wheel, at Sprouston, in the following curious manner. The fish were rising wantonly, but not taking the fly ; in striking at one of them the line looped over its tail, and the hook catching the line on the upper side the fish was fairly snared, and at length killed, after showing extraordinary sport. Sometimes, also, they will leap out for pastime, and at others from fear. Thus if a salmon has been once touched sharply with the hook, when he sees the fly above him on some future day he will often vault into the air. I once saw a marked instance of this. A very young friend who was fishing with me saw a fish spring over his line in this manner, and he kept flinging at him with the same result, the salmon always moving forward, till he fairly chased him up the water some hundred yards ; tliat is to say, from " The Webbs," NOVEL METHOD OF FISHING. 141 above Craigover Boat Hole in the Mertoim-water, half Avay up to Maxwell Burn foot. Believe me, it was a pleasant thing to behold. INIy friend would not be denied. Master Sahno Salar, and he was a lusty one, would not accept, but acknowledged the courteous tender of Michael Scott at every cast, in the manner I have described. Thus, they held correspondence with each other a considerable time without coming in con- tact. At length piscator began to suspect that the repulsive qualities w^ere on his side, and the atti'active ones only on the part of the fugitive, who knew, " but how it mattered not, It was the wizard Michael Scott." So he tiu'ned his back upon him reluctantly; but, casting a lingering look behind, he could not forbear returning and doubling liis defeat. This fish had probably been touched by a fly before. That night, the hostel being fidl, we slept in a double- bedded room. At the dead hour of twelve I was awakened by loud cries of " I have him, I have him ! " — " Hold him fast then," said I, for I thought he had collared a thief; but in truth he had not : he had only got hold of the bell-rope, and was fisliing away with it in liis dreams, with a salmon, of course, at the end of it. Luckily he did not arouse the Maritornes of the inn : no bell having ever been attached to the pull, which was a mere matter of ornament. The first thing to be considered in rod fisliing is the state of the water proper for the sport ; and I beg that it may all along be borne in mind that my 142 DISCOLOURED STATE OF WATER. observations relate to the river TAveed only : for it must be obvious that as rivers vary in their depth and volume of water, no general rule for their being in proper order for the fly can he laid down. The waxing, as it is called, and the progress of a flood, has been already explained in a former part of these pages. When the Tweed is not clear, but, as it is termed, drumhj, salmon that have been some time in the river never take well ; in such case, when there were no clean fish in the water, I have sometimes had fourteen or fifteen offers without taking above one or two fish. They do not see the fly distinctly, and therefore come at it slowly and with hesitation. One would think they had some particular method of holding it awhile by way of ex- periment, just within the point of their noses ; for I have often struck a salmon sharply, and felt as if my hook was firmly fixed in him, Avhen in a moment after- wards it has come away quite easily ; and this has hap- pened two or three times in succession, the water being in the foul state I have mentioned. It must be noted also, that when the river is swoln and discoloured, salmon travel in the daytime, particularly Avhen there is a fresh wind to ruffle the surface of the water ; and as they are intent on their journey, they are not apt to pay much attention to such food as we Avorthies offer them. Now as this uncertainty of hooking a fish that offers happens to me or to you, so the same thing Avill occur to CA^ery other fisherman that is out on the same day, these animals being all of the same mind ; but I have heard good fishermen in the North say, that they DISCOLOURED STATE OF AVATER. 143 always had the best sport before the river cleared. I suppose it was in shallow streams ; because it is evident that salmon, who always lie at the bottom of the river, or on the edge of a rock near it, coidd not see the fly at any great depth when the waters were turbid. It must be observed, however, that in more shallow places, where they can distinguish it, there is a great difi'erence between a newly run fish and one that has been some time in the river ; the new one being wild and gamesome, and ignorant of the Avays of the world, and the other the very emblem of prudence, and an admirer of the old adage, " Alicays look before you leapJ''' It is difiicult to express by words the exact state of the water I wish to allude to : if it is only moss-stained good sport may be had with clean fish, but there must be a certain degree of transparency. The upper parts of the Tweed come into order for being fished much sooner than those below, and this in proportion to the depth and volume of water. It must be owned that fish may occasionally be caught in turbid, and CA'en fidl water; but then it must be by a perfect change of system. At such a tune the strong streams and usual salmon casts are useless ; and you must throw in the easy cheeks near the land, and in the tails of the streams, where the fish rest in travellino;. In this way I once caught five salmon in the Pavilion- water from off the shore, unattended even by a man with a cleik; whilst my friend, Avho fished above me in the finest streams in the water, with a boat and all appliances and means to boot, did not rise a single fish ; not from want of skill — for it was Lord SomerviUe — but i 144 A CONFIDENT FRIEND. simply because the salmon did not lie in their usual scats. A word or two I will now say about the management of the cleik, which, although it seems simple enough, requires some address. Take care, most worthy attend- ant — for it is to you I speak — that in the effervescence of your zeal you steer clear of the line, and that after you have struck the fish you tow him steadily to the shore ; and I beg, sir, to caution you, and just merely to hint, that if you attempt one of your flourishes, and try to do all at one rapid jerk, you will have decidedly the worst of it. There must be two motions, — a strike, and a havil. By way of illustration, I must tell you of a gentleman who came to visit me whilst I lived on the banks of the Tay, and was desirous of seeing a salmon caught before he returned to the South ; so I launched my boat and set to work. Now on these pressing occasions one has commonly a blank day, instead of a show off: not so, however, in the present instance, for in a short time I killed six fish. "When I had subdued their strength, I gave up the rod to my companion, who finished them skilfully enough. These fish were from seven to twelve pounds each, as well as I can recollect. I next hooked a large and peremptory salmon ; and when he got weak I could not land, on account of the alders which grew on the margin of the river. *' Give me the cleik," said my confident friend; " let me come at him. I should like to try my hand at that, as well as at the rod, though it is a savage aflau\ Do you tliink I can manage it ?" " I have no doubt of it," said I, A SLIGHT MISHAP. 145 — *' tam Marti, qiiam Mercurio." But pray let me interrogate you a little. Can you swim ? " " Swim ! no, not I ; why do you ask me that ? " '^ Because assuredly, if you do not take care, that salmon will pull you into the water ; so be canny." There was an open laugh at this, and a look of defiance at the fish. Rash youth ! you stretched forth your dex- ter, and executed a well-directed stroke at the animal, thinking to tuck him out of the water at one coup ; but you had very considerably miscalculated your own powers, and the weight you were to encounter. There were two things decidedly against you ; one, that the salmon Avas three feet long, and lay with his broadside towards you, so that you had a heavy weight to lift, and a considerable column of water to tlisjDlace ; the other, that you were standing in a boat, and had an unstable balance. Thus, you were tilted forward in a way with which your will had nothing to do ; so that had not I, even I, Harry Otter, laid hold of the skirts of your coat, we should have been fishing with the long net for you : as it was, the resistance only tlu'cw you prostrate in the boat ; and I was sorry to see you so much incommoded by the water which had not been ladled out of it : inheriting all the valour of your ancestors, you still grasped the cleik, and, as I pushed the boat ashore, struggled your very best, tiU you dragged your prey to firm land. He was not a clean salmon, nor was he the cause of cleanliness in others ; but, as you may remember, ex- ceeded twenty pounds. The success of a salmon fisher not only depends upon L 146 IMPETUOUS FLOODS. the weather, but upon the state of the river as it is affected by the rains ; so that one may be weeks, and even montlis, on the spot, without the possibility of taking a fish with the rod. The water may be too low to admit of fish coming up, or it may be too fuU in flood, with diurnal waxings ; so that sportsmen Avho come from a distance, and have not much time to spare, may be grievously disappointed. In the upper part of the Tweed, real good rod fishing lasts but a few days after a spate : indeed, the water there is not properly supplied with fish till there are two or three spates in succession. The hills are now so well drained, that the flood runs off rapidly ; and thus the river soon falls in, and becomes too low for the fly, except in the strong streams. Before these complete drainages took place, the Tweed kept full a much longer time than it does at present; for the rains which feU remained in the mosses, which gave out the water gradually, like a sponge. Now the hill sides are scored with innumerable little drains, which empty themselves into the burns, which burns soon become impetuous torrents ; thus suddenly supplied, the Ettrick, the Yarrow, the Leader- water, the Ale, the Tiviot, and the many other streams that empty themselves into the Tweed, come raving down from the mountains and from the lakes, and, with their united volume, raise that river to an alarming height in the space of a few hours, which then spreads over th haughs, and sometimes sweeps off corn and cattle, and levels the bridges in its irresistible course. In these awful spates, the water is too strong and turbid for fish to travel : the soil is washed away partially from A GUDGEON-HUNTER. 147 the ploiiglicd lands ; and, as the practice of liming them is very prevalent, the waters are obnoxious to the fish. I have often wondered how the trout could possibly survive this state of things ; but they do survive it, by keeping at the eddies and close to the banks amongst the grass, where the pout nets haul them out by dozens. Though I have given the foregoing instructions with much pleasure, I w^ould not advise any one Avho wishes to stand well with society to utter a word about his propensity for fishing. It is generally thought a poor, inanimate occupation; and so, indeed, it is in some cases ; and yet the passion is so strong, that I believe the sedentary angler who catches a roach or dace, worth- less though he be, and weak and diminutive withal, has as much pleasure in his way, as the proud conqueror of a twenty-pound salmon. I was once rowing on the Thames when a friend hailed me from afar, and beckoned with joyous and eager solicitation. Though I was pressed for time, I pulled up to him against the wind and stream, for I thought he had something of great moment to impart ; but it was only to say, " that I would be glad to hear he had caught two dozen gudgeons that morning." But I do not think I was glad, at least not particularly so, though he was a very worthy man. As for myself, if I am ever so indiscreet as to utter a word about fishing, I am always asked, " if it does not require a great deal of patience." Now, these sort of interrogators are in Cimmerian darkness as to the real thing. But I tell them, that to be a first-rate salmon fisher requires such active properties as they never L 2 148 EFFECTS OF A STORM. dreamed of in their i)liilosophy. It demands (salmon fishing at least) strength of arm and endurance of fatigue, and a capability of walking in the sharp streams for eight or ten hours together, with perfect satisfaction to one's self; and that early in the spring season, when the clean salmon first come forward. In after life, people are considerably addicted to boats, and to go about at- tended like admirals ; that is what we must all come to. But your real professor, who has youth on his side, should neither have boats nor boots, but be sufficient in himself. No delay, no hauling the boat u]) the stream, but in and out, like an otter ; even like we ourselves in the time of our prime, Fahrenheit being below zero. We then pitched our tent under Craigover rocks, on Tweedside, and slept in it, that Ave might go forth, rod in hand, at five o'clock each morning to our aqueous pastime. It is true that the late John Lord Somer- ville objected to our tent, as being a white object, and therefore likely to j^revent the fish from passing by it to his upper water. But we proved to him, by mathe- matical lines adroitly drawn, that it was not within the range of a salmon's optics. So our tent stood, till a violent storm assailed us one night with barbarous fury, tore up the pegs to which the ropes were fastened, and gave up all our canvass to the winds. Thus, we got an ample soaking in our bed, in which we cut a pretty figure, no doubt, when disclosed to public gaze ; but we were not blown into the Tweed; so that, upon the whole, we were uncommonly fortunate. But we discard ourselves for the present. I say then, and will maintain it, that a salmon fisher FERTILE IMAGINATION. 149 should be strong in the arms, or he will never be able to keep on thrasbiug for ten or twelve hours together with a rod eighteen or twenty feet long, with ever and anon a lusty salmon at the end of his line, pulling like a wild horse with the lasso about him. Now he is obliged to keep his arms aloft, that the line may clear the rocks, — now he must rush into the river, then back out with nimble pastern, ahvays keeping a steady and proper strain of line ; and he must preserve his self- possession, " even in the very tempest and whirlwind of the sport," when the salmon rushes like a rocket. This is not moody work ; it keeps a man alive and stirring. Patience indeed ! It is indispensable to have a quick eye, and a ready hand : your fly, or its exact position, should never be lost sight of; and you should imagine every moment of the livelong day that an extraordinary large salmon is coming at it. No man can do any thing properly unless he is sanguine, and his whole heart and soul is in the business. " Remember, my good people all, I do not wish to press this laborious sport unfairly upon you : excuse me, but it may be you are not exactly fit for it, — ' non cuivis homini,^^^ &c. You may saunter about Avith a gauze net and two sticks, if you prefer it, and catch butterflies. Every man to his vocation ; but " what is a gentleman without his recreations ? " There is a speculation in angling that gives great zest to the sport. You may catch a moderate-sized fish, or a distinguished one ; or, mayhap, a monster of such stupendous dimensions as will render your name im- mortal ; and he may be painted, and adorn some fishing- L 3 150 ENOKMOUS PIKE. tackle shop in Loudon, like Colonel Thornton's pike, which threw Neivmarket on his back as he was landing him, — a lad, says the Colonel, so called from the place of his nativity. Of course you expect the latter phe- nomenon every cast. You see him in your mind's eye eternally following your fly, and you are ready to strike from second to second. It is true he does not actually come, as experience teaches. But what of that ? he may come in an hour — in a minute — in a moment ; the thing is possible, and that is enough for an angler. A friend of mine (sacred be his name !) of great repute for his dexterity with the rod, and celebrated for his agreeable and amiable qualities, as well as for his intel- ligence and various accomplishments, had this poetical facility of seeing what did not really exist in substance. A curious instance of this popular talent occurred at a friend's house in the country with whom he was staying. There was a fine piece of water in the park, well stored with fish, where he used to spend most part of the morning, rod in hand ; so that his perseverance excited considerable admu'ation from the host, as well as from his guests. Not having been very successful, his ardour at length began to flag. It Avas a pity, for it is a pleasant thing to be excited. Wliat was to be done? You shall see. A report Avas raised that there was an enormous pike seen in the water, about the length of a decent-sized alligator. He was said to have maimed a full-grown swan, and destroyed two cygnets, besides sundry ducks. At first he was no more believed in than the great sea snake, which encloses at least half the world in his folds. But after the lapse of a few days. SPLENDID EYES. 151 the keeper came to the private ear of my friend, and told huu that a mortal large pike was basking amongst some weeds, and could be seen plainly. " You are sure to cotch en, sir." He was rewarded for tliis intelli- gence, and exliorted to keep the important secret from the other visitors at the mansion. When piscator, cunning fellow ! thought that all were out of the way, employed in hunting, shooting, or some other occupation, he and John Barnes the keeper glided down secretly to the awful spot, and they there descried the semblance of a fish so enormous that it was doubted if any thing less than a small rope could hold him. The sportsman was astounded — the keeper was not ; for the said awfid animal was nothing more than a large painted piece of wood, carved deftly by himself into the shape of a pike, painted according to order, and stuck in the natural position by means of a vertical prop, Avhich could not be discovered amongst the weeds. It was too bad, really a great deal too bad ; but tolerably ingenious, and beautifully deceptive. The gentleman approached with tact and caution, and the eyes of the fish glared upon him ; as well they might, for they were very large and dazzling, being made of glass, and originally de- signed to be inserted in a great horned owl which the keeper had stuffed. " What a prodigious fish, John ! " " Very perdigious indeed, sir." " What eyes he has ! " " So he has, sir." " I'll try him Avitli a roach. — There, — it went in beautifully, and he did not move." L 4 152 A DISCOMFITURE. " No, he Avont take it no how. Give him a frog ; he seems a difficult fish." Piscator did tender him a very lively one in vain ; in short, he offered him every bait he could possibly thmk of, running through all the devices and temptations he was master of. Cautious in his approaches, that the supposed fish might not see him, he always advanced to make his cast upon his knees, to the no small merriment of his friends, who were looking at him through a telescojDC from the windows of the mansion. Well, thus he spent the whole morning ; waiting, however, at times, for a cloud to intercept the sun- beams, and a breath of air to ruffle the surface of the water. AVlien these came, he would set to work again with renovated hopes ; till at last, tired and discomfited, he bent his steps homewards. On his arrival there, he was accosted on the very threshold by some of the guests. " Oh ! you have been fishing all the morning, I see ; but what could make you stay out so long, and get away so cunningly with the keeper ? " " Why, to tell you the truth, Barnes (you know what a good creature he is) told me of an inuuense pike that was lying amongst the weeds at the end of the lake ; he must be the same that swallowed the cygnets. T never saw so enormous a monster in fresh water." Omnes. — "Well, where is he — where is he? let us look at him." Host. — " John, tell the cook we will have him for dinner to-day. — Dutch sauce, remember." Piscator. — " You need not be in such a hurry to THE KIVER TAY. 153 send to the cook, for I am sorry to say I did not catch him." Host. — " Not catch hun — not catch him ! Impossible, with all your skill, armed as you are to the teeth, with roach, bleak, minnows, frogs, kill-devils, and the deuce knows what. Not catch him ! Come, you're joking." Piscator. — " Serious, I assure you. I never was so beat before, and yet I never fished better ; but though I did not absolutely hook him, he ran at me several times. ^'' An universal shout of laughter followed this assertion, which made my friend not a little suspicious ; but he never again touched upon the subject. Some time afterwards, wandering near the scene of his operations, he saw an immense carving of a pike placed upon a pole near the margin of the water, and painted beautifully : he guessed he had seen liun before. Let us now return to the Scotch rivers. The Tay, which rises from, and is approximated by, vast and desolate regions of moss and moor, preserves its volume of water much longer than those rivers that have their sources in a more pastoral and agricultural country, and of course is much longer in good order for fly fishing. But when the black clouds burst over the vast wilderness of mountains, a hundred torrents gleam on all sides, rush down the rocky ravines, and change the bums into turbulent rivers, which pour their floods into the mighty channel of the Tay : thus this river probably carries more water to the ocean than any other in Great Britain. I have read much of the rapids of the great rivers in 154 THE TAY IN A HIGH FLOOD. America, and the difficulty of steering and shooting down them in safety ; and the accompaniments of the scenery, and the descriptions of these cataracts, have always apj)eared to me singularly wild and picturesque. They made so great an impression upon my mind that, to form a more correct idea of the sort of thing, I meditated a voyage down the Tay when, filled with her countless tributaries, she goes raging to the ocean. Besides this inducement, I had some small boats which I wished to take to Perth by water, instead of land carriage; for I was changing my quarters from Meik- leour on the banks of the Tay to the Pavilion on those of the Tweed. These boats were built on Tweedside for fly fishing in small waters, and in warm weather were held for the fisherman by a man Avho waded in the water, lest the salmon should be scared away by the motion or ap23earance of the oars, or canting pole, as it might be. Being, therefore, of a very light and duninutive con- struction, they were not exactly calculated to endure the buffets of large and tempestuous waters : one is not apt, however, to be over nice about such things, and accordingly I resolved to put them to the proof. Nor was an opportunity long wanting. After a night of heavy rain, the Tay, wliich flowed through the park of Meikleour, rose to a fearful extent. Tliis was exactly the sort of thing to suit me ; so I proposed to my fisher- man, Charles Purdie, to go down the flood to Perth, a distance of about twelve miles by water. We did so ; and I here insert the particulars of our voyage, as they may serve to give an idea of a Scottish spate. We were standing at the foot of the sloping lawn LINN OF CAMPSIE. 155 before my house ; and as Charlie Purdie bent his regards on the frightful violence of the flood, I thought he did not half lilie to embark on it. In fact, he did not only disapprove of the general conduct of the river, but also of the j)eculiar rocky nature of the channel in wliicli it was its pleasure to gallop along to the ocean. Moreover, he knpw there was an obstruction in the river at a place called the Linn of Campsie, about four miles below the proposed starting-place, where at the arrival of his little boat he did not anticipate mvich pleasure. In fact, neither Charlie or his master conceived it would be pos- sible to pass the falls into the Linn, since no boat could do so in the ordinary state of the water without being upset, or dashed to shivers. They would see how things looked, however, on their arrival at the spot, and act accordingly. " Now then, loosen my boat, Charlie : I will go first ; and take care you do not run foul of me." The boats being unmoored, we shot down the river in a moment, and were soon at the end of the park, where the Isla comes into the Tay. This additional volume of water increased our velocity ; we guided our boats into the main currents, and aAvay we went with the swiftness of a steam-engine. Rocks and woods opened to our view in an instant, and in an instant vanished behind us. Thus we were driven along with great fury till we came within the sound of the great falls of the Linn of Campsie : soon we descried before us the awful barrier of rocks which rose up right athwart the stream, extending from bank to bank. The waters had worn their way in some places through 156 EXPLORING THE LINN. this barrier, and tumbled madly through the rocky gorges ; down they went, thundering with stunning sound into the enormous cauldron below. Then arose the strife — the dashing of the spray — the buffeting against the banks — the swirling of the eddies, crested with laro;e masses of foam — all was in hideous com- motion. This state of things threatened to put an end to our projected voyage. To go right onwards through the centre gorge was to pass to certain destruction: as well might one hope to shoot in safety down the falls of Schaffhausen. I was prepared for all this, and was quite aware of the impediment before I began my voyage ; so I did as I had made up my mind to do before I started. I pulled towards some alder trees wliich grew on the bank above the fall, and held my boat fast by the branches ; I then told Charlie to secure his boat also with a rope, and to land and reconnoitre. We were enabled to do these things without much difficulty, as the water was in some measure arrested in its course above the fall, being slightly bayed back by the barrier of rocks. Being on terra firma, my hero looked ruefully at the torrents : one alone appeared something like being prac- ticable ; and it was one that, in the mean state of the river, was nothing but a dry channel. Whether our small craft could shoot down it without foundering or not was by no means evident to the eye, though a practised one, of the explorer. He was, however, some- what encouraged by two fishermen who were mending their nets. They thought, they said, that Ave "might SHOOTING DOWN THE LINN. 157 possibly descend in safety, if we managed our boats well." Charlie looked, and sighed, and looked again : the thing was evidently not in harmony with his ideas ; for he could not swim himself, and he doubted whether liis boat would either, when it arrived at the bottom of the fall. However, I decided that I would try the thing alone ; and if it should prove a failure, the example was not, of course, to be followed. So I brought my little boat some way above the cataract, with her head up the stream, and by rowing against it let her fall by degrees stern foremost, by which means I had a clear view before me, and could therefore steer to a nicety. She went down most agreeably, though in nearly a vertical position, but pitched upon a rock below the fall; but before any harm hajDpened, I swimg her off by inclining my body to and fro. My fisherman fol- lowed successfully ; and having passed the wide-spread- ing Linn, the channel of the Tay became more con- tracted, and we resumed our former pace, shooting down the rapids like an arrow, and by occasional swift snatches of the oars avoiding the breakers around us. So we passed amongst the hanging woods and impend- ing rocks of this romantic river, till we arrived at Stanley, where groups of people were assembled on the hill-top, who shouted to us with all their might, and made signs and gestures, the meaning of which I could not comprehend, but they seemed to be warning us of some impending danger : I could not catch the import of their words, as the sound was but faintly heard amidst the din of the waves. So I did not perplex myself with attending to them, but thought it wisest to 158 SAFFLY LANDED. trust to my own discretion, whicli fortunately carried the boats safely to their place of destination. I learned afterwards, that seeing our boats were mere insignificant cockle-shells borne down t>y the flood with great im- petuosity, they were fearful that we should be carried down the mill-dam, and come in contact with the ma- chinery. But a better fate awaited us than such a Quixotic one ; and after a little rough work, in which we shipped a reasonable quantity of water, we at length approached the vast bleaching grounds of Perth, where the river swept swift and ample in an even channel under a wooded bank studded with villas; we then darted through the middle arch of the beautiful l^ridge in the town, and hauled up our boats on a wharf below it. AN ANGLER ENTRANCED. 159 CHAP. VII. Whate'er Lorraine light touched with softening hue, Or savage Rosa dashed, or learned Poussin drew." Exploring one morning the upper parts of the river, with my trout rod in my hand, I came to a little meadow in a vale where the stream played in mazes beneath hanging coppices. In this sequestered spot, I espied a gentle angler — I may say particularly gentle. His mode of fishing appeared so novel, that I was induced to pry a little into it ; so I ventured to approach him, and asked what sport he had been having. " Oh, glorious, glorious, — perfectly enchanting! All Paradise is around me ! " I took notice, however, that although he held his rod pretty much in the usual piscatorial position of altitude, his fly was by no means on the water, but lay very comfortably dry u23on the furzes on the bank side, and that, whatever his hand might pretend to be doing, his mind was not at that moment particularly bent upon a capture. Wliilst he stood entranced, I took the liberty of lifting up the lid of his basket, in which I descried nothing but a pair of gloves — not a fish reposed in it. It was clean, new, and Cockney-like, and I ventured to give him a hint to this effect. " Well now I declare, sir, that is very singular ; 160 AN INNOCENT MISTAKE. because I certainly caught two trout, and put them into my creel. But I clare say you are a little absent, and did not notice them ; I am somewhat absent myself occasionally." He examined the basket, and found only gloves by themselves, — gloves. " Where can I have put them ? " " Indeed I can't guess, sir." He then began to shuffle about and examine his waistcoat pockets and those of his pantaloons, nay, actually his fob. " Perhaps, sir, you did not find quite room enough in your fob, and put them into your coat pocket for fear they should soil the basket." " Bless me ! so I did ; and here they are, truly. I see now how it is ; in a hurry, and whilst I was wrapt in admiration of the scenery, I put the gloves where the fish should have been, and vice versa, — nothing could be more natural." This he said with a simplicity worthy of the golden age. But he declared that although he was not at that moment very intent on the sport, he did like fishing exceedingly. " Because," said he, " it requires no parade of attendance, like other field sports ; it leads to the most beautiful spots ; and I take up my rod and my painting box at any hour I please, and saunter over the flowery meads, in a state of tranquil enjoyment, amidst all the most pleasing images of rural life." I observed there was considerable excitement in fishing occasionally, as well as tranquillity. " For instance, now," said I, " there is a sea trout in that run of water cow VERSUS FISH. 161 that will make your heart dance, if you should happen to hook him ; I saw him put his head up at the cheek of the current, and he had a wilful look, and is lil^ely to make most pernicious runs when hooked ; for these sort of fish are very active and strong. If you will give me leave, I will change your trout fly for a larger one, and instruct you how to proceed, as from the natm'e of your tackle I conclude you are not ac- customed to fish of this description. There now — go a little higher up the stream ; throw above liim, and bring the fly gently round ; and if he comes at it, do not strike liim too hard, or you Avill break your slender tackle. If you get hold of him, we shall see how he is to be managed ; he will ymt your tranquillity to the test, I promise you." He grasped the rod, and held it aloft ; then, after a considerable pause, " He is exactly in the right spot," said he. " Precisely," I replied. " What a rich red tone of colour he has, — how well it tells in the shadow ! He will come in capitally." " He is not red, I assure you, but clear as silver, and I wish he ma7/ come in capitally." " Bless me ! he looks red to me, and I must take him immediately ; he is exactly the thing I wanted." So saying, to my amazement, he dropped the rod, and pulled out a sketch book, in which he began painting a red cow in water colours that was reposing under a hawthorn bush on the opposite bank, just beyond the stream where the fish was lying, and which had been the real object of his remarks. When he had done with M 162 TRANQUILLITY. the cow, however, I put the rod once more into his hands, and reminded him of the fish. " Now throw a few yards above the spot where you see the water boiling around that large blue stone. Very well; advance a step every time you throw. Capital ! Now you are precisely at the fish. Strike him gently if he rises. Well done ! — by Paul Potter you have him ! Hold up the top of your rod, and keep an even steady pull upon him." " Plow can I keep a steady pull upon such a wild animal ? AVhy he springs out of the water, and whizzes about in it, like that fire-work called a seriDcnt," " Be steady — be steady, or he will whiz you about with a witness. Shorten your line ; get into the water, and follow him." " What a cruel speech ! Why I never learned to swim. You are exceedingly inconsiderate indeed, sir." " Swim ! why the water on this channel is scarcely over your ankles, and I will help you if you should hap- pen to stumble." " Then we should both meet a watery grave to- gether. I have often read of such calamities." " In with you, — in with you, I say, or he will be off*. There, I told you so ; he has broke your line ; and, pray pardon me, but pretty work yovi have made of it with your tranquillity." " Well, as it seems to make you so uneasy, I will go a little way into the water, though I shall not enjoy it." " Why, what is the use of wetting yourself, now you have lost the fish ? " " True, true, — I did not sufficiently consider that; VIEW-TAKING. 163 SO now I will go back, and see if I can improve my cow." This was abundantly philosophical ; but intelligible enough to me, who being very much addicted to paint- ing myself, know hoAv absorbing a passion it is. The cow was a good cow, — drawn in a clean and de- cisive manner, with a correct knowledge of the anatomy of the animal. I j^raised accordingly, and we began naturally enough to talk upon the principles of land- scape painting ; and as w^e both agreed pretty well as to those principles, so we both laid down the law with as much confidence as if we w^ere the lineal descendants of Zeuxis or Apelles, — a fashion, I must observe, most par- ticularly prevalent at the present day. I fear it is not worth while to notice our remarks. I wiU write them down, however, at a venture ; and here they follow. *' View-taking," said the cow limner, " I consider as of a distinct character from landscape painting. The interest of the first, as a work of art, in all highly cul- tivated countries, must in a great measure depend upon accidental causes. Trees in hedge-rows, and most other positions, have been planted or removed by the hand of man for profit or convenience, so that they are rarely found in the most natural or efifective situations ; other objects share the same fate, and even the vivid verdure is produced by artificial means. Still it is right for the view-taker to copy every thing before him just as it really presents itself. This may be desirable as a remem- brance, or an exact illustration of the scenery of a country, and indeed occasionally, by some happy ac- cident, as a work of art ; it may also have great interest M 2 164 LANDSCAPE TAINTING. as representing passages in rural life. But it is obvious that, in a country highly cultivated, a scene very ac- curately delineated represents the materials only, and not the composition of nature, strictly so called. " On the other hand, the landscape painter should aim much higher ; he should get all his materials from the most striking and characteristic specimens in nature, and study such forms and combinations as may make an interesting impression on the mind. Trees, rocks, water, mountains, — all his materials he should arrange upon the same principle that an historical painter ob- serves in composing from living models. He should address the imagination rather than the eye, and en- deavour to convey to his work some prevailing character, which may awaken a corresponding sympathy and in- terest in the contemplative beholder. " As to colour and effect, every tinge of light that is beautiful and striking, every varied appearance that the change of the hour and the seasons may bring forth, should l>e marked down and coloured on the spot. This should be the unremitting practice of the artist, that his works may bear the impress and truth of nature. " Taking care to lay his emj)hasis upon those domi- nant objects that give beauty, character, or sublimity to the landscape, he should keep all the rest subordinate, though intelligible; always bearing in mind that the eye sees those objects only in detail upon which it is immediately fixed. If, on the other hand, he copies from nature every individual thing before him exactly as he sees it, when his eye rests upon that individual object alone, he docs not represent the scene such as he CLAUDE, AND SALVATOR ROSA. 165 saw it in nature at one general and comprehensive view, but as it appeared to him by examining separate parts one after the other, each part having a distinct focus. If then he adopts this method of proceeding, he will paint upon a false, though a very prevalent principle, and his picture cannot fail to have an unpleasant and irritating effect. " Infelix opens summa, quia ponere totum Nesciet." He paused a little to take breath, as well indeed he might ; so I took the opportunity to lay down the law also, and to remark that he must have arrived at his conclusions from a study of the paintings of those emi- nent masters whose works are sealed with perfection, and sanctified by time, — productions that elevate us above the level of common thought, and carry us into the regions of poetry and romance. " In the pictures of Claude, by a happy treatment of his subject you see more than the bare materials of common nature. There the glow of Italy lies radiant before you : the eye passes from the flowery fore-ground, with its tall trees just moved by the zephyr, and wanders from distance to distance over clustering groves, and classical ruins, amidst the quiet lapse of waters, and all the pastoral beauty that poets have delighted to feign. " Directly opposite to the blandishments of this great master, but true to itself, is the genius of Salvator Rosa. Little recked he of Arcadian scenes. Mysterious and elevated in thought, he delighted to stalk over the wilds of Calabria ; and there, in regions desolate and do- M 3 166 POUSSiN. loroiis, by the side of some impending rock, amidst tlie din of torrents plunging down to the horrid gulf be- low him, he formed a style original, savage, and in- domitable. Nothing entered into his pictures that was commonplace or mean. His figures were banditti, for- lorn travellers, or wrecked mariners. His trees the mo- narch chestnut, forming impenetrable forests, or blasted and riven by the thunderbolt. All his forms were grand ; even his winged clouds had a stern aspect, and partook of the general character. Titian, Claude, Poussin, Salvator Rosa, — these, and some others of the good old times, drew the poetry and soul of landscape, and not its mere dead image — and this is the triumph of art." I fancy my new friend the artist paid very little attention to my remarks, which I am not at all sur- prised at ; for he began to soliloquise in an absent man- ner about Poussin, whom he said I should have placed between Claude and Rosa ; and as he seemed to threaten rather a long encomium, I pretended to see a fish rise, and glided away qviietly : for I thought enough had been said on the subject of painting already. As I stole off, however, I caught a few un- connected expressions ; such as " dark groves and solitude — storms, — tempests, — and alpine ridges." Then he grew somewhat classical, and began to recite from Virgil — " Tot congcsta manu praeruptis oppida saxis, Fluminaque antiques subterlabcntia muros." At this I walked faster and faster, till I got totally out of hearing. Not through dislike of the subject did I THE GREY SCULL. 167 I make my escape, for it was one after my own heart ; but my rod was in my hand, and " hoc afje " has always been my maxim. Besides the day began to alter, and a fine fresh breeze arose, which came up the river ; clouds appeared over the horizon, Avhich kept gathering, and brought on slight showers and passing shadows, with occasional bursts of sunshine that glittered on the curl of the water. Now, as far as my experience goes, this is the best sort of weather for sport. The pre- judice, notwithstanding, I believe, runs in favour of a grey day ; but such a one has often deluded my ex- pectations : at which time I have found the fish dull and sulky, when I was in hopes they would be up and stirring. It is not meet that they should study Zim- merman. It was now the month of September, and I was ex- pecting to catch some of the grey scull that come for- ward at that season. These fish are of a goodly shape ; but though fresh from the sea are not quite so glossy in their scales, or so rich in flavour, as your brown - backed salmon that comes up early in the spring. They are altogether of a greyer colour than that beautiful fish, and derive their name from that circumstance. So soon as I had changed my tackle, my enthusiastic companion came sauntering up to me. I am not quite clear that he Avas fully sensible of my presence, for his heart seemed still to be amongst the Apennines with Poussin. I made an attempt to dislodge him, and bring him down to the level of my own ideas. " You know," said I, " that Gaspar was a great sportsman, though it is not probable that he ever caught M 4 1 68 KOSLIN. a salmon, which is a northern fish ; but if you will con- descend to transport yourself from the banks of the Arno to those of the Tweed, and to walk an hour or two with me, I think I can promise that you shall see such a feat performed." Stranger (abstractedly) : " riuminaque antiques subterlabentia muros." " Come now, sink Vu'gil and the artist a little ; put your sketch-book in your pocket, and let us see what can be done with the salmon. Your quotations, my dear sir, with your permission, will keep, as they have kept, for ages — ' Adde tot egregias urbes.' No, no ; there are no eminent cities or towns here, only Melrose and Gattonside ; and if you call these * egregias urbes,' you are egregiously mistaken." He made no reply, but looked at me with a smile that seemed directed at the simplicity and absence of his own character. " Now," said I, " as you seem to have descended from your stilts, which I beg to say are very becoming, though somewhat out of season, I will tell you how all people are not exactly of our way of thinking, as to the triumph of art and these classical illusions ; imagining, on the contrary, that painting is a sleight of hand, and comes by intuition. " I was lately sauntering with my painting-box in the romantic glen beneath the towers ' Where Roslin's chiefs uncoffined lie ; Each baron, for a sable shroud, Sheathed in his iron panoply.' PURE GENIUS. 169 As I went along I traced the mazes of the river, in some places brawling among the rocks, and at others gliding silently through the mossy stones. I was thus endeavouring to find out such points of view as had most interest, and to investigate the peculiar character in which the charm of the scene consisted. " Having at length settled all this to my satisfaction, and marked in the outline of a scene with a piece of white crayon, preparatory to colouring it in oil, a very respectable-looking lady came sailing up to me, and begged to look at my canvass. The day being some- what advanced, she asked me how many sketches I had made that morning ; and upon my telling her that the one she was looking at was the first, she replied with very perfect exultation that her daughters had not been half an hour in the gLen before they made nearly a bookfull of drawings ; but then, indeed, there were very few people so gifted as her daughters. I acquiesced in good faith ; for I really knew no human beings that could do the same thing in the same time, and j^erhaps I might add in the same manner ; so I concluded that the talent of these young ladies, like Madame Laffarge's genius for pastry, was ' colossal.' " ' Then they never learned,' continued the lady ; ' it was all pure genius. Indeed Maria showed a singular facility for taking likenesses at three years old. Sir Thomas Lawrence had admired them very much.' " I bowed, and did not doubt it. In a short time the young ladies themselves, and very pretty and sprightly ones they were, came tripping up. ■ " ' Oh, mamma, we have been here only an hour, and have brought away all the scenery of the glen ! ' 170 TWOS ANi) THREES. " ' Only forty minutes, upon honour, Maria.' " ' There, sir, you see ray daughters do not throw away their time like some people.' " I was not quite so sure of this ; but a look of admir- ation on my part followed of course. The young ladies then began to discourse on art, and to ask what was my pecvdiar method of getting up sketches. " ' Pray, sir,' said the accomplished Maria, ' do you make your trees in twos, or in threes ? ' " As I did not comprehend the exact meaning of these terms of art, she was pleased to illustrate by favouring me with a sight of one of her recent performances. The trees she particularly alluded to, I found, were those which represented a distant mass of wood. In executing a tree in such situations I was instructed that a sort of flourish should be made, consisting of two segments of a circle, just as birds are drawn in prints; and this is doing trees in hcos — in threes, another segment was added; and thus the mystery was solved, — the whole was executed in a running flourish with admirable facility. I cannot conscientiously aver that any one of the leaves of the sketch books of these intelligent young ladies contained what might be termed a di-awing, but still there was something about them that might put a person of imagination very much in mind of drawings." Thus, having beguiled the attention of Mr. Tintern (for that was the stranger's name) from the summits in which he had been soaring, I found him quite ready to receive an impression of a more humble kind, and he attended me in my walk, nothing loth. I was very much gratified with his company ; for, besides his talent and simplicity of character, there was such an A VORACIOUS SALMON. 171 appearance of benevolent feeling in much of his con- versation, which I have not thought it necessary to mention, that no one could avoid being taken with him. I commenced operations at the Carry-wheel, which is nearly at the head of the Pavilion-water, and had not made four casts before I hooked a fish. He was evi- dently diminutive ; but, dwarf as he was, he thought a good deal of himself, and was prodigal of the little strength which nature had given him. I thought him conceited, and so hauled him on shore at once without any ceremony. _ He proved to be a river trout of four pounds, — a silly-looking creature enough. Well, I went forward and caught a few gilses and salmon in the upper Pavilion-water, not worth men- tioning, except as the sport had the effect of rousing my new friend from his abstraction ; indeed I met with nothing remarkable till I came to the Kingswell Lees. Now every one knows that the Kingswell Lees, in fisherman's phrase, fishes off land ; so there I stood on terra dura amongst the rocks that dip down to the water's edge. Having executed one or two throws, there comes me a voracious fish, and makes a startling dash at " Meg with the muckle mouth." Sharply did I strike the caitiff; whereat he rolled round disdainful, making a whirl in the Avater of prodigious circum- ference : it was not exactly Charybdis, or the Maelstrom, but rather more like the wave occasioned by the sudden turning of a man-of-war's boat. Being hooked, and having by this turn set his nose peremptorily down the stream, he flashed and whizzed away like a rocket. My situation partook of the nature of a surprise. Being on a rocky shore, and having a bad start, I lost ground 172 MELROSE BRIDGE. at first considerably ; but the reel sang out joyously, and yielded a liberal length of line, that saved me from the disgrace of being broke. I got on the best pace I was able, and was on good ground just as my line was nearly all run out. As the powerful animal darted through Me(fs Hole, I was just able to step back and wind up a few yards of line ; but he still went a killing pace, and when he came near Melrose Bridge he evinced a distressing preference for passing tlu'ough the farther arch, in which case my line would have been cut by the pier. My heart sunk with apprehension, for he was near the opposite bank. Purdie seeing this, with great presence of mind took up some stones from the channel, and threw them one by one betAveen the fish and the said opposite bank. This naturally brought Master Salmo somewhat nearer; but still for a few moments we had a doubtful struggle for it. At length, l)y lowering the head of the rod, and thus not having so much of the ponderous weight of the fish to en- counter, I towed him a little sideways; and so advancing towards me with propitious fin, he shot through the arch nearest me. Deeply immersed, I dashed after hun as best I might ; and arriving on the other side of the bridge I floundered out upon dry land, and continued the chase. The sahnon, " right orgillous and presump- tive," still kept tlie strength of the stream, and, abating nothing of his vigour, went swiftly down the Whirls ; then through the Boat shicl, and over the shal- lows, till he came to the throat of the Elm-wheel, down which he darted amain. Owing to the bad ground, the pace here became exceedingly distressing. I contrived. THE CAULD POOL. 173 however, to keep company with my fish, still doubtful of the result, till I came to the bottom of the long cast in question, when he still showed fight, and sought the shallows below. Unhappily the alders prevented my following by land, and I was compelled to take water again, which slackened my speed. But the stream soon expanding, and the current diminishing, my fish likewise travelled more slowly ; so I gave a few sobs and re- covered my wind a little, gathered up my Hue, and tried to bring him to terms. But he derided my efforts, and dashed off for another burst, triumphant. Not far below lay the rapids of the Saughterford : he would soon gain them at the pace he was going, that was certain ; — see, he is there already ! But I back out again on dry land, nothing loth, and have a fair race with him. Sore work it is. I am a pretty fair runner, as has often been testified ; but his velocity is surprising. On, on, — still on he goes, ploughing up the water like a steamer. " Away with you, Charlie ! Quick, quick, man, — quick for your life ! Loosen the boat at the Cauld Pool, where we shall soon be." And so indeed we were, when I jumped into the said craft, still having good hold of my fish. The Tweed is here broad and deep, and the salmon at length had become somewhat exhausted; he still kept in the strength of the stream, however, with his nose seawards, and hung hea\41y. At last he comes near the siu'face of the water. See how he shakes his tail and digs downwards, seeking the deep profound — that he will never gain. His motions be- come more short and feeble; he is evidently doomed. 174 THE COUP DE GRACE. and his race well nigh finished. Drawn into the l)arc water, and not approving of the extended clcik, he makes another swift rush, and repeats this effort each time that he is towed to the shallows. At length he is cleiked in earnest, and hauled to shore : he proves one of the grey scull, newly run, and weighs somewhat above twenty pounds. The hook is not in his mouth, hut in the outside of it ; in which case a fish being able to respire freely, always shows extraordinary vigour, and generally sets his head down the stream. During the whole period of my experience in fishing, though I have had some sharp encounters, yet I never knew any sport equal to this. I am out of breath even now whenever I think of it. I will trouble any surveyor to measure the distance from the Kingswell Lees, the starting spot, above Melrose Bridge, to the end of the Cauld Pool, the death place, by Melrose Church, and to tell me how much less it is than a mile and three quarters, — I say I will trouble him to do so ; and let him be a lover of the angle, that he may rather increase than diminish the distance, as in good feeling and respect for the craft it behoves him to do. I will likewise thank my contemporaries and posterity to bear in mind that the distance about to be measured by this able surveyor was run at an eclipse pace, always allowing for some slight abatement in speed pending our im- mersion. Whilst I was taking a rest on the greensward, the heated face of my excellent new friend appeared through the alders. He could not, however, be fairly said to be in at the death ; the coup tie f/race having been already MONSTRUM HORRENDUM. 175 given about five minutes. He expressed the greatest astonishment at the swiftness and result of the race, and at the power of the fish, who had been able to distress two full-grown men so completely. He owned he was much excited, but thought fishing for salmon would be too turbulent an amusement for him ; though perhaps he might have kept up with a good pony, had the ground been passable by such a beast. Poussin, Virgil, the Apennines, all were forgotten ; and he began to enter warmly into the spirit of the present, and was curious to know by what particular tactics one can con- trive to get the better of such a large furious monster, as he expressed it, with such apparently inadequate means, when a small sea trout broke him with all the ease imaginable. As I now reckoned upon his atten- tion, I told him, as follows — how to manage a large sahnon, and how a large salmon may manage us : — " When you get hold of a monstnim horrendum, ingens of a fish, say of some five and forty pounds, you must anticipate a very long and severe battle. If, therefore, you have a disposable Gilly with you, despatch him in- stantly for some skilful fisherman, as well to assist you when you are exhausted with fatigue, as to bring your dinner and supper ; not forgetting a dark lantern, that you may not be beaten by the shades of night, — a cir- cumstance by no means improbable. At the first onset you will probably be obliged to keep your arms and rod aloft, in order to steer clear of the rocks. This action, with a heavy rod and large fish on your line, is very distressing, if continued even for a short time ; and it will be necessary to repeat it often, if the channel is 176 DUNCAN GRANT. not very favourable ; and in that case your muscles will ache insupportably, if they at all resemble those of other men. The easiest position, when it is safe to use it, is to place the butt of your rod against the stomach as a rest, and to bring the upper part of the arm and the elbow in close contact with the sides, putting on at the same time an air of determination. If your leviathan should be superlatively boisterous, no one knows what may happen. For instance, should you be in a boat, and he should shoot away down the river, you must follow rapidly ; then, when he again turns upwards, what a clever fellow your fisherman must be, to stop a boat that has been going down a rapid stream at the rate of eight miles an hour, and bring it round all of a sudden in time to keep company with the fish, who has taken an upward direction ! And what a clever fellow a piscator must be, if he can prevent twenty yards of his line, or more, from hanging loose in the stream ! These sort of things will happen, and they are ticklish concerns. All I can do is to recom- mend caution and patience ; and the better to encourage you in the exercise of these virtues, I will recount what happened to Duncan Grant in days of yore. " First, you must understand that what is called ' pre- serving the river' was formerly imknown, and every one who chose to take a cast did so without let or hinderance " In pursuance of this custom, in the month of July, some thirty years ago, one Duncan Grant, a shoemaker by profession, who was more addicted to fishing than to his craft, went up the way from the village of Aberlour, A COMFORTABLE EXPEDIENT. 177 in the north, to take a cast in some of the pools above Elchies Water. He had no great choice of tackle, as may be conceived; nothing, in fact, but what was useful, and scant supply of that. " Duncan tried one or two pools without success, till he arrived at a very deep and rapid stream, facetiously termed ' the Mountebank : ' here he paused, as if medi- tating whether he should throw his line or not. ' She is veiy big,' said he to himself, ' but I'll try her ; if I grij) him he'll be worth the handing.' He then fished it, a step and a throw, about half way down, when a heavy splash proclaimed that he had raised him, though he missed the fly. Going back a few paces, he came over him again, and hooked liim. The first tug verified to Duncan liis prognostication, that if he was there ' he would be worth the haudmg ; ' but his tackle had thirty plies of hair next the fly, and he held fast, nothing daunted. Give and take went on with dubious ad- vantage, the fish occasionally sulking. The thing at length became serious ; and, after a succession of the same tactics, Duncan found himself at the Boat of Aberlour, seven hours after he had hooked his fish, the said fish fast under a stone, and himself completely tired. He had some thoughts of breaking his tackle and giving the thing up; but he finally hit upon an expedient to rest himself, and at the same time to guard against the surprise and consequence of a sudden move- ment of the fish. " He laid himself down comfortably on the banks, the butt end of his rod in front ; and most ingeniously drew out part of his line, which he held in his teeth. ' If N 178 CLEAN DUNE OUT. he rugs when I'm sleeping,' said he, ' I think I'll find him noo ; ' and no doubt it is probable that he would. Accordingly, after a comfortable nap of three or four hours, Duncan was awoke by a most uncere- monious tug at his jaws. In a moment he was on his feet, his rod well up, and the fish swattering down the stream. He followed as best he could, and was be- ginning to think of the rock at Craigellachie, when he found to his great relief that he could ' get a pull on him.' He had now comparatively easy work; and exactly twelve hours after hooking him, he cleicked him at the head of Lord Fife's water : he weighed fifty-four pounds, Dutch, and had the tide lice upon him." Thus Duncan Grant has instructed us how to manage a large Salmon. Let us now see how a large Salmon may manage us. In the year 1815, Robert Kerse hooked a clean Salmon of about forty pounds in the Makerstoun Water, the largest, he says, he ever encountered : sair work he had with him for some hours ; till at last Rob, to use his own expression, was " clean dune out." He landed the fish, however, in the end, and laid him on the channel; astonished, and rejoicing at his prodigious size, he called out to a man on the opposite bank of the river, who had been watching him for some time. " Hey, mon, sic a fish ! " He then went for a stone to fell him with ; but as soon as his back was turned, the fish began to wamble towards the water, and Kerse turned, and jumped upon it ; over they both tumbled, and they, line, hook, and all went into the Tweed. The fish was too much for ROB OF THE TROUGHS. 179 Rob, having broke the Hue, which got twisted round his leg, and made his escape, to his great disappoint- ment and loss, for at the price clean salmon were then selling, he could have got five pounds for it. Thus you see how a large fish may manage us. I must tell you that the above-mentioned Robert Kerse has long been a distinguished character on the Tweed. At a secluded spot, where the woods and rocks dip down to the margin of the river, and where its current is opposed by a rocky barrier through which it has worn its way in frightful gorges, the gaunt figure of auld Rob of the Troughs has been seen any time these forty years. He is very tall and bony, and when work- ing his boat with the canting pole amongst the rapids, or lookmg down on the water from a jutting rock with his leister aloft ready to strike, he cuts a most formidable Salvator Rosa-like appearance. Rob is now highly sea- soned with the saltness of time, being nearer eighty than seventy years old ; drinks whiskey like water, his native element ; and to this day runs after the hounds, when they come near, like a boy of fifteen. He is a genuine lover of all sports, and has begot numerous sons and daughters : of the former four are game keepers, and fishermen on Tweed, Tiviot, and Ettrick, to the Duke of Buccleuch, Lord Lothian, and Lord Home. They are remarkable as claiming a regular descent from Saxon ancestors in the most remote times, and are an active, athletic, clean-limbed race of men, keen of eye, and swift of foot, of good pluck, and altogether amphibious, loving the heather and mountain flood better than the street and servants' hall. Stalwart men would they N 2 180 KOB AT BAY. have been in a Border Foray had they lived in the time of" Johnny Armstrong. Such and so great are the Kerses ; but they will not go down to posterity like the Purdies, " carent quia, Vate sacro : " neither could the old river god Eob himself contend with the otter so valiantly as Charlie Purdie. Whether it was that he had a sort of fellow-feeling for an animal that was amphibious like himself, and followed the same pro- fession, or from what other cause I cannot say, but Rob did not particularly shine in a fair stand-up otter fight, as you shall hear. In the latter end of September, 1839, Kerse had set a cairn net at the Clippers, " a little below Makerstoun House, but on the bank of the river opposite to it ; and on going to the cairn to examine the net, he saw a young otter sitting on, and entangled in it ; he threw more of the net over it, whilst drawing it to the land, and when he had caught hold of the tail, and was carrying it off, a large otter, wdiich he described " as a she ane," five feet in length, jumped out of the water, ran up the bank after him, to use his own words, " like a mad bear," and commenced a furious attack upon him. Rob had nothing to defend himself with but his hat ; and as he Avas holding the young one with one hand, he found he was likely to have the worst of it, and to be Ijitten by the one animal or the other. So he threw the whelp to the old one, saying, " Aye, ye she devil, he may get her, twae to ane is odds." They both swam away ; that is, the two otters, not Kerse. On looking after them he saAv two other young ones trying to make past the point of the cairn, which, owing ROB BREAKS THE BAY. 181 to the sti'engtli of the current, they seemed unable to eftect : Kerse thought he would try the thing again, so he laid hold of one of them, and pulled it out also by the tail ; scarce had he done this, and had begun to take to his heels, ere out again jumped the old one, and at- tacked him ; but this time Rob had provided himself with a large stone, and hit the old beast on the back, when he again set off, and carried the young one with him, which was afterwards given to Lord John Scott. During the whole contest, says Rob, " the auld beast keepit squeeling, and makin' a noise something like a horse, when he gies a snore." How Charles Purdie contended with an otter, will be seen hereafter. N 8 182 GLAMOUTJ. CHAP. VIII. " Of Scotland well, the friers of Faill, The liminory laiig hes lastit ; The monks of Melros' made gude kaill On Fridays when they fastit." Spec. Godly So7tgs, page 87. In rambling by Tweedside one never loses sight of the Eildon hills within many mUes of Mekose, which, to- gether with the river and abbey, are the dominant features of the country. Of the legend touching them there are two versions ; the poetical one given us in " the Lay of the Last Min- strel," " And, warrior, I could say to thee The words that clove Eildon hills in three," comes, as all the world knows, from a very high au- thority ; and, besides being extremely probable in itself, has good classical conformity to the magician in Ariosto, who produced marvellous visions in the air which, as- tounded the beholder ; but he having a glass given him by a more powerful enchanter, which enabled him to see things in their true semblance, saw only the magician sitting on a cloud, reading his book ; thus in both these cases wonderful things were done by caba- listical words, wliich art is called Glamour. MICHAEL SCOTT. 183 Now as to the Eildons, I do not exactly see what motive the wizard could have in cleaving them in three ; I therefore rather lean to the story, which is still cur- rent in the country, especially as it is very circumstan- tial, and most agreeable to sober reason. It runs as follows : — Old Michael Scott the wizard, whose fame as a powerful magician had spread over most part of Europe* (the same alluded to as having cleft the Eildon hills in three), was at continual feud with the holy monks of Old Meh^ose, and constantly playing his cantrips on them : they on then- part w^ere assiduous in using exorcisms, and such means as put Michael Scott's power in some danger ; so the wizard resolved that they should not have the light of the sun during vespers, but that they should either abstain from them altogether, or be put to the expense of oil or candles. To effect his puqiose he summoned a spirit or imp, or something very like a real devil, who was subject to his bidding, and for whom he was obliged to find con- stant employment. Hun he commanded to place a mountain to the west of the monastry, so as to intercept from it the rays of the setting sun. The imp being ingenious, and strong wathal, looked around him, and found his affair in the Cheviot hills. Tliither he hied, and with an iron shovel, he took away from them at one scoop a quantity sufficient to form one of the hills, which he deposited * " Quel' altro Michele Scoto fu, clii verainente Delle luagiche Frodi seppe U. GIoco." Dante. N 4 184 Michael's imp. where he was commanded, and in two more journeys formed the other two hills, just as we see them now, only that they were bare of verdure. In his passage a part fell out of the shovel, which is now called Ruberslaw, which slovenly slip accounts for the in- equality in point of size of the Eildons. At this slip Michael was exceeding wrath, and pursued his imp towards Tweedside to punish him. The imp had a good start, and Michael lay rather out of his ground : Avhen the evil spirit came to old Melrose, he saw a l>rave company of monks in the haugh, who had made a kettle of Jish*, and were carousing with goodly flagons of ale. It is said Thomas the Rhymer of Ercildoune was with them, and that the prior, who threw a long line, had been very successful Avith it that morning, having had good sport in the Gateheugh streams, and caught two clean fish in the Holy-wheel, now called the Hally-wheel, a stream which he himself tabooed upon the same principle that the Italians write " Rispetto " on the walls, namely, to keep off intruders. At the sight of so many pious men, the little imp skulked behind a tree, and INIichael himself was taken aback, and ran cunning, making a cross cut over the peninsula, in order to come in upon the imp below ; the latter being hardly pressed, made for the river, well knowing that his task-master was not only a bad boat- man, but that no enchantment could subsist in a run- ning stream. Arrived there he formed the scoop of * It is still a custom to make parties and dress the salmon on the spot immediately after their capture, which is called having a lipttle offiili. THOMAS OF ERCILDOUNE. 185 liis shovel into an iron boat, in which lie sat and launched himself, using the handle as a rudder, round which he twisted his tail that he might steer with the greater nicety — tali auxilio — Michael, forgetting, in the heat of his wrath, his impotence of enchantment in a river, got into a fisherman's boat above Dryburgh, and gave chase. Now this boat being more buoyant than the imp's iron one, he gained fast upon him, and just got hold of his tail in a long reach above Mertoun, called ever after from that event " the Doiip Roads.'''' As to whether the said usual appendage to a devil was greased or not, tradition has left us in ignorance ; but it eluded the grip, and the imp shot down a cauld, through so rapid a gorge, that the warlock hesitated to follow. And now a new scene presented itself; a third boat came sweeping under the scaurs in their rear, and joined the chase, its crew consisting of Thomas the Rhymer, and two zealous fathers, who pursued the wnzard with bell, book, and candle ; and they would have ran into him a little below Craigover, but that he shot ashore ; and then being on dry land, threw up by his art a bay behind him to obstruct their passage, and thus jocky * them ; but Thomas of Ercildoune, who was also a powerful magician, opened a passage on the south side of the river, and the monks only received a slight check. In the meantime Michael launched again ; but tlic devil beat them all hollow at Little-Dean stream, which, * This spot still goes by the name of Jocky Bay, and is a good salmon cast. 186 IMPEKFECT INCANTATION. being swift, rocky, and shallow, suited his style of navigation admirably. Now there was, and still is, a witch dwelling on the craigs near Makerstoun, at the Corbie's Nest, who, by a deception in magic called glamour, assumes the semblance of a crow. She was a sort of ally of Michael Scott, and flew forth, croaking her hoarsest and best upon the occasion. How far her power extended, and what she did, I have never heard ; but certain it is that the wizard landed, that his magic might have effect, and, with or without her assistance, endeavoured to " bridle the Tweed with a curb of stone ; " but his left foot insensibly touching the running stream, the work was imperfect and disunited, so that the whole volume of the river gushed through the rocks in gorges with such ai:)palling violence, that neither he of Ercildoune or the Frati thought it prudent to follow.* Michael now, seeing the pursuit after his familiar was vain on the water, remained ashore, and summoned another spirit, who was subservient to him, in the shape of a coal-black horse, and springing on him, said, as was Ills custom, "Mount, Diabolus, and fly;" but he was scarcely firm in his seat, before the little devil got down to sea, Avhere he sunk his boat, and vanished to the bad jDlace from whence he came. There is still a dan- gerous sandbank over the spot where this curious iron boat is deposited ; and, as the mode of dissipating shoals * These rocks are called the troughs, or in Scotch, trows, and are under the beautiful grounds of Makerstoun. A very active gentleman, who resides a few miles higher up the river, has in very low water leaped froni rock to rock, and thus crossed the Tweed without wetting his feet. THE IMP VICTORIOUS. 187 and blowing up sunken vessels is now well known, I trust some effort will be made, either by government or a joint-stock company, to recover this valuable cu- riosity. Thus terminated a race, singular for the skill that was displayed under embarrassing circumstances, and wonderful as to the persons and powers that were en- gaged in it. " When next these wights go forth to sail. May I be there to see ! " CHAR IX. Dinna let tlie Sherra' ken Donald Caird is come ajjain." Scott. If I were to write an account of lialf tlic poaching tricks that are common to all Salmon rivers, I should j>roduce a book, the dimensions of which Avoidd terrify the public, even in this pen-compelling age. CONSCIENTIOUS WATER BAILIFF. 189 In times when water bailiffs in Tweed had veiy small salaries, they themselves were by no means scru- pulous about the observance of close time, but j)artook of the good things of the river In aU seasons, lawful or unlawfid. There is a man now, I believe, living at Selkirk, who in times of yore used certain little free- doms with the Tweed Act, which did not become the virtue of his office. As a water bailiff he was sworn to tell of all he saw ; and indeed, as he said, it could not be expected that he should tell of what he did not see. When his dinner was served up during close tune, his wife usually brought to the table in the first place a platter of potatoes and a napkin ; she then bound the latter over his eyes that nothing might offend his sight. This being done, the illegal salmon was brought in smoking hot, and he fell to, blindfolded as he was, like a conscientious water bailiff, — if you know what that is ; nor was the napkin taken from his eyes till the fins and bones were removed from the room, and every visible evidence of a salmon having been there had completely vanished : thus he saw no illegal act com- mitted, and went to give in his annual report at Com- hill with his idea of a clear conscience. This was going too near the wind, or rather the water ; but what would you have? — the man was literal, and a great eater of Salmon from his youth. People who are not water bailiffs have not always so delicate a conscience. Let us examine the style and bearing of such marauders as have fallen under our notice. In the first place, there is your man with a pout net, which resembles a landing net, only that it is very con- 190 BLACK FISHERS. siderably larger, and Is in shape only half of a circle ; with this he scoops out foul salmon during floods, when, from weakness, they are miable to stem the current, and get close under the banks. This he transacts very snugly, under pretence of taking trouts ; so indeed he does, and welcome too, if he would stop there ; but this he is per- fectly averse from. Next in consequence comes your Triton, who walks the waters with a long implement in his hands, namely a leister, alias a waster ; with this weapon, " quocunque nomine gaudet," the said deity, quick of eye and ready of hand, forks out the poor fish that are spawning on the streams ; and this in close time. Vile, vile Triton ! Then comes yoiu' lawless band of black fishers, so called from their masks of black crape with which they disguise themselves : these men come forth in the dark- ness of the night to burn for salmon. When the winds are hushed, you may sometimes hear the dipping of oars and the clanking of a boat chain, and see at a distance a small light, like a glow-worm. In a little while the light blazes forth, and up rise a set of Othellos who are about to take a private benefit. These minions of the night are generally men of a desperate character, and it is not easy to collect water bailiffs sufficient in number or willing to encounter them ; but if water bailiffs would fight, how very picturesque the attack would be ! The rapids, — the blazing, — the leisterSj — the combatants driven headlong into the river. Why, the battle of Constantino and ISIaxentius, and the affair of the bridge, as seen in the famous fresco, would be nothing to it. The only tiling I should KIYER SNEAK. 191 apprehend would be, that the bailiffs would eventually sport Marc Antony and run. In contradistinction to these illuminati comes your plausible poacher, a sort of river sneak. This man sallies forth with apparent innocence of purpose ; he switches the water with a trout-rod, and ambulates the shore with a small basket at his back, indicative of humble pretensions ; but has a pocket in his jacket that extends the Avhole breadth of the skirts. He is trout- ing, forsooth; but ever and anon, as he comes to a salmon-cast, he changes his fly, and has a go at the nobler animal. If he hooks a salmon, he looks on each side with the tail of his eye to guard against a surprise ; and if he sees any danger of discovery from the ad- vance of the foeman, he breaks his line, leaves the fly in the fish's mouth, and substitutes a trout one ; — said fish swims away, and does not appear in evidence. I once came upon one of these innocents, who had hold of a salmon with his trout-rod in a cast a little above Melrose bridge, called " the Quarry Stream.^'' He did not see me, for I was in the copsewood on the summit of the bank immediately behind him. I could have pounced upon hun at once, I and my fisherman. Did I do so ? I tell you, no. He would have broken his line as above, and have lost the fish ; and I wanted a sahiion, for it is a delicate animal, and was particularly scarce at that time. So I desired Charlie to lie down amongst the bushes, and not to stir till the fish was fairly landed, and was in the capacious pocket, which has already been de- scribed. Then I counselled him to give chase, and liarrie 192 A CHASE. the possessor. Judging, however, that if the man crossed the river at the ford a little below, which he was very likely to do, that he would have so much law of Charlie before he could descend the steep brae, that he might escape : I drew back cautiously, got into the road out of sight, and passed over Melrose bridge, taking care to bend my body so as to keep it out of sight behind the parapet ; I then lay concealed amongst the firs in the opposite bank. Thus we had Master Sneak between us. I was at some distance from the scene of action to be sure, and somewhat in the rear, as I could advance no further under cover ; but I had the upper ground, and was tolerably swift of foot in those days, which gave me confidence. I took out my pocket glass, and eyed my man. He was no novice : but worked his fish with great skill. At length he drew him on the shore, and gave him a settler with a rap of a stone on the back of his head ; he then, honest man, pryed around him with great circumspection, and seeing no one, he took the salmon by the tail, and, full of internal contentment, deposited it in his well-contrived pocket : he then waded across to the south side of the river, with an intention, as it seemed, of revisiting his household gods and having a broil. Charlie now arose from his lair, and scrambled down the steep. The alarm was given, but he of the salmon had a good start, with the river between him and his pursuer. So he stopped for a moment on the haugh to make out what was going forward on all sides, much after the fashion of an old hare, who runs a certain distance when she apprehends any thing personal, then GRANTING A FAVOUR. 193 rests for a moment or two, and shifts her ears in order to collect the news from all quarters of the compass. Even so did our friend, and having satisfied himself that he was a favoured object of attraction, he was coy and took to flight incontinently ; I now sprang up from the firs, the game being fairly afoot, and kept the upper ground. The pursuit became close and hot, but as the fugitive, like Johnny Gili)in, carried weight, I soon closed with him. " You seem in a hurry, my good friend ; your busi- ness must be pressing. What makes you run so ? " " Did ye no see that bogle there by the quarry stream, that garred me rin this gait, haud on for yer lives, sirs, for if he overtakes us, Ave are deid men." " Why the truth is, Sandy, that I do not choose to haud on at present, because I came forth in quest of a bonny salmon, and cannot go home without one ; could you not help me to such a thing ? " At this Sandy took a pinch of snuif from his mull, and seeing my eyes fixed upon the length and pro- tuberance of his pocket, answered quaintly enough, — " Aye, that can I, and right glad am I to do ye a fa- vour, ye shall no want for a salmon whilst I have one." So saying, he pulled forth a ten pounder, which oc- cupied all the lower regions of his jacket. " How the beast got here," said he, as he extracted him gradually, " I dinna ken, but I am thinking that he must have louped intill my pocket, as I war wading the river." " Nothing more likely, and I will admit him to have done so for once, but, mark me, I will not admit of any salmon doing so in future without my permission in o 194 THE souter's retreat. writing. You have been trouting, it seems, pray what sort of a fly do you use ? " " Whiles I use a wee aue, and whiles a uiuckle flie, ane for rough and deep water, and the ither for shallow streams. " That is the way to trout, both in loch and river." " True ! I see you have some bonny little flies in your hat ; take it off" carefully, Purdie — you understand me, — and let me admire them." Charlie advances, and taking off* the man's hat with great care so as to keep the crown undermost, he pulls out from the inside six well tied salmon flies of the most approved colours, which he transferred to his own pocket. I actually saw " Meg with the muckle mouth " amongst them. " Aye, ye are as welcome to the flees as ye are to the sawmont, and I am proud to do ye a good turn at ony gait." " Well now, bear in mind, that I will never permit you to throw a fly wee or muckle in the Pavilion water again ; and if you darken the shores with your presence a second time, I will have you up at Melrose." " I'm thinking I shall tak' your advice, for ye seem a sensible chiel. Will ye accept of a pinch of snuff*? " '' Good morning, good morning, get thence to Sel- kirk as quick as ye can, we know ye well for a souter of that town. Run, run, the bogle is after you ! " " Run, aye that will I, and the deil tak' the hind- most," said he, and off* he went at his best pace; leaving this blessing and the salmon to solace us. Perhaps I shall best give a general idea of what Avas THE CLODDING LEISTER. 195 going on formerly in close time by a recitation of the confessions of my departed friend Thomas Purdie ; and let it be borne in mind in his behalf, that at the time of his cantrips salmon were not valuable, and, consequently, little cared for, so no great harm was done ; but it is clear from liis own showing that Tom in his early days was a sort of Donald Caii'cl, for he had no right to be " Ijleezing up," where he did. For the better understanding of his narrative, I shall give a description of the clodding, or throwing leister, or waster, as he was used to term it, the instrument with which he perfoiined his sleights. It differs ma- terially from the one in common use ; a description of which latter will be given hereafter. This throwing leister is used chiefly on the upjDer parts of the Tweed, and its tributary streams, where the water is not deep. The spear has five prongs of unequal, but regularly graduated, length. Those which are nearest the fisherman, and which come to the ground first in throwino" beins; the shortest. The entire iron frame of the spear is double the weight of that in com- mon use. An iron hoop is bound round the top of the pole, as a counterbalancing weight ; and the pole itself has a slight curve, the convex part being the outermost in throwing : a rope made of goats' hair, called " the lyams," is fastened to the top bar of the spear just above the shortest prong; this rope is about twelve yards long, and is tied to the arm of the thrower. The spear is cast like a javelin ; and, if thrown by a skilful hand, the top of the shaft, after it has pierced the fish, faUs beyond the vertical point towai'ds the opposite bank of o 2 196 THE CLODDING LEISTER. the river ; then the fish is pulled to land by means of tlie aforesaid rope or lyams, so that there is little chance of his escaping in his struggles for freedom. The accompanying engraving represents the iron of the clodding waster ; that in general use will be given hereafter. Now for Tom Purdie. I should miss the nice points of his character were I to deprive him of his own peculiar way of communicating his feats, though it is but too true, that when he got upon a favourite subject, he was most mhumanly elastic. TOM PURDIE'S MUCKLE FISH. " AVliile I was with Mr. Anderson, and shepherd at West Bold, one Sunday," says Tom, " I did na go up TOM PURDIE's MUCKLE FISH. 197 to Traquair to the kirk, but took a walk by the river side ; there were a vast o' fish in the water, and I saw ane or twae great roeners turning, a sure sign there were mickle kippers too. I had dandered down to near the burn fit, and had a pair of good stilts aye lying there. My first wife was then a lass, and lived at Caberston; and the stilts were ready to cross the water at an orra time. I took a thought that I would like to see what was steering on Caberston throat; and sae I lap on the stUts and went through at the rack; and when I was on the other side, I thought I might as weel tak a keek at the throat. I keepit weel off the water-side, until I was down aneth where the fish began to work. I kend by a clour in the water a gay bit afore me, that there was a big redd there, and drew cannily forrit. 'Odd, sir ! my verra heart lap to my mouth when I gat the glisk o' something mair like a red stirk than ought else muve oif the redd, and hallans doVvn the water and make for the south side. I fand my hair creep on my head. I minded it was the Sabbath, and I should not hae been there. It might be a delusion o' the enemy, if it was na the deil himsel'. I stude and consider'd. I had never seen the deil i' day- light, and forbye there was just then a great brown rowaner slade off the redd after him. If it was the deil, what could he be doin' Avi' the rowaner? The water was breast deep at the least ; it might be a fish after a', and I had heard the auld folk speak o' vera muckle anes. I lookit up the brae to the toon. Peggy aiblins hadna likit my hankering about the tlu*oat on sic a day^ and she had slippit in to the house, and didna come out o 3 198 A DEVIL OF A FISn. again. Sae when I saw it was sae, I held up the water side for my stilts, keepin', for aw that, an ee to the redds. Heaven forgie me ! I neuer saw sic a water o' fish ! If it was na the deil I had seen, I was sure he was na far off. I saw eneugh to temp a better man than me ; and I began to think I had better be at hame reading a chapter o' the gude book, if no a leaf or twae o' " the Fourfold State ; " sae I took the stilts and came through again by the rack, and wan hame just a wee thought afore the master and the mistress, honest woman ! came hame thrae the kirk. I haflins wist I had been there too ; — but yet I was only lookin' at the warks o' the creation, and couldna say I had done ony great wrang ; an' if I hadna seen Peggy come out o' the byre at Caberston, I ablins hadna stillit the water after a'. But I fand I could na read a styme ; for, do as I might, I could na get the appearance that I had seen out o' my mind ; and yet whan I consider'd about the micMe roioaner, that I was sure eneugh was a yeithly thing, I could na help believing that it was, after a', a fish I had seen ; but I never saw sic another. " Weel, a' the time the master was at the readin', I could na keep the glisk o' the aw some mickle fish out o' my head, and whan we raise thrae the prayers, I popit the shouther o' the nowtherd callant, and said quietly, ' Sandy, if I raise ye about twal o'clock ye needna wonder ; sleep as fast as ye can till than, and tak' nae notice to Jamie when ye rise.' I had aft ta'en this lad wi' me afore to baud the light ; for he was a stout loon o' his age, and could hand a light weel enough ; having a natural cast rather bye common for HEATHER LIGHTS. 199 a kin-kind o' mischief and ploys, and, I believe, was sound asleep in five minutes. " As for mysel', I need hardly say I never steekit an e'e. I kend fu' weel that if we war na at Queedside by the first o' the Monanday morning, the hempies out o' twae or three o' the touns o' the north side o' the water wad be bleezin' up afore us ; and some devihie came o'er the cock that sat on the Byre balks aside us, for he never mist to skirl every ten minutes thrae the time I lay doon ; sae I was as often grapin the hands o' my watch, which I had gotten in a coup thi-ae Geordie Matheson three weeks afore. ** At last, whan I had a gude guess it was drawing- near to twal o'clock, and nae fear o' Ijreaking the Sabath, I gat up and shook Sandy by the shouther, who was out o' bed in a giffy. We went to the barn, and tyed up tAvae prime heather lights, thrae a bunch or twae, which I had gae'd the miller lad dry on the killn ten days afore. They may talk o' ruffies and birk bark baith ; but gie me a good heather light, weel dried on the killn, for a throat o' the Queed. However, I got the lights on my back, Sandie carried a weel dried bairdie^ and I took in my hand my clodding wastei'. I had gi'en the Runchies o' Yarrowford seven white sliil- lino's for her: but nane could make a waster wi' the Runches*, nor track an otter either; they had clean * The Runches (Runcimans) of Yarrowford were two celebrated smiths, probably brought to Selkirkshire by Murray of Phillip- liaugh. They were fomous for a peculiar art in tempering edge tools. Their otter hounds and terriers also were capital. Singidar stories were told of their sagacity. Rob Runchy, as a forlorn hope, O 4 200 AN UNSONSIE GALLANT. the best terriers in the hale country side ; and they had an art o' tlieir ain in tempering the taes o' a waster that they took to the grave wi' them. I could hae thrawn mine off the head of a scaur ; and if she had stracken a whinstane rock she wad hae been nae mare blunted than gif I had thrawn her on a haystack. " On our Avay to the water, I was nae little fashed wi' the unsonsie callant blowing up the bairdie every now and than, to mak sure that it was na out, and I had ance or twice to shake him by the neck ; for I was na sure that the Gabberston folk, who were aye devilash yaap when there Avar mony fish in the water, might na be lying at the side o' the throat ready to blaw up when it past twal o'clock ; and gude truly, if they had gotten a blink o' our bairdie, they wad hae ta'en that instead o' the hour. At any rate there was little use in warning aw the north side o' the water that Tarn Purdie was ga'n out to the fishing; and, to tell the truth, the Sabbath day was little mair than o'er. " But some had clippit the wings o' the Sabath closer than us after a' ; I saw the twinkle of a coal every now and than commin down Caberston peat-road; and I weel kend it was just the Sandersons o' Priesthope bent for the same place wi' oursels. It was ill bein' afore them on a Monanday morning wi' fair play, when the water was in good trim. Faith I lost nae time when I saw the twinkle o' their peat-coal (there was nae strae for bairdies at Priesthope) in tying the lights on once throw his clodding leister at a drowning man floating down the YaiTOw in a high flood, and hauled him out with the Ijams un- harmed. TOM PURDIE GETS A FLEG. 201 the callant's back and thrawing him and the clod- waster on my shouther and stilting the water as I had done in the daylight. I kent fu' weel the place where the big redd was, and blew up about thirty step below, sae that the light might be at the best when we came foment it. Sandy held the light weel ; his eyn were glenting in his head wi' eagerness ; and just when we cam to the tail o' the redd, I saw the muckle kipper lyin' like a flain wedder. I had, as I thought, the ad- vantage on my side, for the brae was three or four feet aboon the water, and I strack him wi' a' my pith. Whither the mid grain had stracken him on the back fin, I took nae time then to consider ; but the fourteen pund waster stottit off his back as if he had been a bag o' wool. " A cauld sweet cam' owre me, an' I believe every hair on my body crap. I was dead sure it was the deil liim- seV that had been permitted to throw himsel' in my way for breaking the Sabath ! For I had begun to tye up the lights as soon as I shook up the callant ; an' it was hardly twal o'clock. I pu'd the burnin' light out o' his hand, and dash'd it in the Queed, threw him on my back as fast as I could, an' was hardly able to stilt the water again for vera dread. " I needna' say we were soon in our beds ; and I took the callant in aside me, for he was to the full as feard, poor fellow, as I was, • — an' mair. For when I got time, an' turn'd calm eneugh to consider, I began to see it could na weel be auld clutie, for I could mind o' seein' the verra een, an' gib an' teeth and the gapin' mouth o' the kipper. And by and by, I cam' to be 202 KINDLING UP HEATHER AND COURAGE. certain sure it was neither mair nor less than the big monster I had seen i' daylight. Sae wi' that settle- ment there cam' the question ; how could I get another chance? a weel, I lay still till just afore skye-break, which I kend baith by my watch, and the cock that had been through the night as quiet as the kye aneatli him. I waken'd Sandie wi' muckle ado this time, and he had nae grit broo' o' the business : but, however, be that as it may, we tyed up another light an' set off again. But there was still a hankering i' the callant's mind anent ga'an back to the same place, where he had gotten sic a fleg. He was like a colt that has been scar'd wi' a gray stane, an's no willing to venture back to see that its nae bogle. ' But is ye sure, Tam, it was na the deil ? ' ' Deil a bit o' Satan it was Sandie, ma man,' says I, ' for I saw him afore you ; an' the deil dare na show himsel' in daylight on sic a day.' Weel, we gat through the Queed again, an' kindled up the auld place. When we cam' up to the muckle redd, the fiend a haed was there but twae or three rowangatherers whidden about ; sae we cam' up the water-side for the light was only at the best, when, gonshens ! there was the great brute o' a kipper, that, Avhen he had gotten a glint o' the light had minded the dunt he got on the back, an' was glidin' up the side o' the water within three step o' the channel. I scraucht to Sandie to hand up the light, and keepin' clear o' the back fin this time, I strack him atween the back fin an' the gills, at the same time shakin' the lyams off my arm. Peace be here ! if he didna stem the throat four feet deep wi' the waster sticking straight up in his back as if he never fand it. PEREMPTORY KIPPER. 203 wi' the lyams about him ! I durst na draw however. I had nae fear o' their breaking, for they were spun of the hair o' the grey auld buck that gaed for mouy years on the Flora craig * ; but had I pu'd at the lyams, the kipper behooved to turn, an' he might ha' taen down the throat tap water, an' I wad ha' lost my waster an' lyams, or pu'd it out o' his back. That I had nae mind to do. " I never was feard for drownin' in my life ; at ony rate never in the Queed. I strack into the water breast deep, an' wonder sin syne how I keepit my feet ; but I had on a pair o' gude clouted shoon. The kipper tired o' the trade o' gaun against the strength o' the throat, an' tralin' the lyams, turned down the deep side of the water 'atween me an' the brae. I got hand o' the shaft o' the waster, but to try to grund him was need- less, sae I keepit down the shank, an' that made the force o' the water raise the fish to the tap, an' I push'd him to the side, following as I best could, an' pressed him to the brae, when I lifted him out. Wi' the help o' Sandie (who had, when he saw the blood, gotten rid o' his fear o' the deil,) I carried him to the head o' the rack, and when I got him on my back, my certie I was a massy man ! I was aye vext I didna' weigh him, but my belief was he was forty gude pounds, Dutch weight. * I know not the derivation of lyams; the word is only used, as far as I know, to denote a small twisted rope usually made of goats' hair, for the sake of elasticity, and fastened to the bow of the clodding leister : it is coiled on the left arm at the other end in such a manner as to go freely off when the leister is thrown. Jamieson in his Dictionary derives the word from the French lien. 204 GLOSSARY. As I waded the water wi' him, leadin' Sandie by the hand, his neb was above my head, an' his tail plash'd in the water on my heels. *' My father was than miller o' Bold Milln, an' I took him down to be reisted in the kiln ; but we were a' sae thrang wi' talkin' about his size, that we forgot to lay him on the broads, and that, as I was sayin', vexes me to this day." GLOSSARY. Clour — a heaving up of the water. Hallans — slanting. Thrae — from. Haflins — partly. Sty me — none at all, In the least. Popit — tapped. Steekit — closed. Hempies — scamps — rogues , Balks — cross beams. Skirl — crow. Coup — a swap. Ruffies — old pieces of tarred sacking. Bairdie — a straw rope to keep the light in. Yaap — alert. Plain — flayed. Br 00 — liking. Roioangatherers — meaning trout. Massy — proud. Meal stone — containing 16 pounds. Reisted — dried. Broads — scales. Lyams — rope of horse-hair used with the throwing leister. SUNLIGHT. 205 CHAP. X. " And doun the stream, like Levin's gleam, The fleggit salmond flew ; The ottar yaap his pray let drap. And to his hiddils drew." Border Minstrehy. Whilst the Pavilion* was getting ready for my re- ception, I took up my quarters at an inn at Melrose, and, at my instigation, ]\Ir. Tintern came there also, and thus we soon got intimate. The river had been falling in for some time, and was now too low for fly-fishing ; and as the sky had lately been pretty clear, and as the evening promised a calm and sunny day for the morrow, I promised to show him the manner in which we speared salmon by the light of the sun, should the weather prove as good as I anticipated. My expectations for the time, at least, were fulfilled; for on waking I found the whole expanse of heaven serene and glowing ; not a cloud to be seen, not a breath of air to rufllc the water; so I sent to awaken my companion. Breakfast was prepared, but no Mr. * Having often mentioned the Pavilion Water, I should have explained before that it belongs to Lord Somerville ; and I have thus called it from the name of his house, which I rented for some years, and which is about two miles up the river from Melrose. The chief scene of ray operations, however, was some miles lower down the river from Dryburgh, as far as Makerstouu. 206 MR. tintern's partiality. Tintern. A little while after I heard a languid voice say, " Want some hot water." A quarter of an hour elapsed, when I heard the same words again ; after about a similar interval of time I heard, " Want a stocking ; " and then, after a long pause, " Want a stocking " again. I was out of all patience ; so I went up to entreat the man of wants to use more expedition, as we were losing a very fine morning. I did not find him in his room, but sitting down half dressed on the upper stair near it, looking at his sketch- book. He had not shaved, as his hint for hot water, having been uttered in a mild tone, had not been taken. He did not so much care about shaving, he said, but he could not go out with only one stocking on, and he could not find the other, and unluckily he had sent his dirty ones to be washed. It certainly was true that one of his legs was bare; and, after a fruitless hunt, we had nothing left for it but to send into the town and buy a fresh pair. After they arrived, however, he discovered that there was no particular necessity for such a step, as he had favoured one leg at the expense of the other, by putting both stockings on it. I had already breakfasted, and my impatience in- creased; so it was agreed that my friend should take our host's little pony, and join me above Melrose Bridge. Wlien I got to the spot, Tom Purdie, who was usually very forward on these occasions, was not arrived ; but I descried Mr. Tintern at a distance, not upon the inn- keeper's pony, but walking down hill; and I went to meet him that he might not miss us at the river. I came up to him precisely at the turnpike by Newton, PONY AHINT. 207 and overheard the following little dialogue between him and the turnpike woman : — • " Here's twopence for you, good woman." " What for do ye gie me tliis ? " " Wliy, for my horse, to be sure." " And Avhar may your horse be ? " " Where ? why here, behind me, my good dame." ** It must be a gay piece ahint then, I'm thinking, for I canna see the beast." At this he began to pull the bridle rein which he had in his hand ; and, upon finding it very particularly obedient, he looked round and found, true enough, that the pony whom he fancied he had been leading down hill, and was at the end of the said bridle, had slipped out his head, and trotted back the way he came. At this incident, he seemed almost as much amused as we were ; though I thought I saw a lurking appearance of distress in his countenance, too, as having further to walk than he had bargained for. Let us now see what the fishermen were doing. Charles Purdie and Thomas Jamieson, whilst sitting on a rock by the water-side, at length descried Tom Purdie making up to them with his leister. " Well, Tom," said Jamieson, " I never knew ye keep ahmt afore, when there was any wark for the leister. What makes ye so late, mon?" " Why, I cudna get awa' from Abbotsford ; there was a gentleman wi' Sir Walter; but wha he was I dunna ken, but I think he was English. Sir AValter gaed out to tak a walk, and cried to me to follow him. When we war joost gaen up near to the turn before we 208 OCCURRENCE AT ABBOTSFORD. cum to the Boor *, Pepper and Finnet were hunting the woods, and INIaida was gacn ahhit us ; and, to my great astonishment, when I lukit a wee piece among the the trees, Di, who was wi' me, war standing, and pit out her muckle tail like the handle of a cleik. Or ever I wishes, out gets a dirty beast of a hare, and bangs right on to the walk afore us. Sir Walter and the other man war going side by side ; or ever I kent, Maida pit his muckle nose past me, when Pepper barkit, and set up his great lugs ; and as the gentleman Avalked rather wide at the knee, he saAv the hare through atwcen his legs, and made a great brush all at aince, and lifted him off his feet. The gentleman, thinking he was going to fa', cotched a firm grip o' INIaida's rough hair as he sat strid legs on his back. Maida wanted to follow Pepper, and rin awa wi' him aboot thirty yards, when he coupit him off, and he fell owr the brae among the bushes on the under side o' the walk ; and Sir Walter gie a laugh ; and I cudna behave mysel ava, for I was nearly fawd doon wi' laughing too. Hey, mon, I never was so takken by the face in aw my life ; and when the gentleman got up, his breeks were riven at the knee ; and when he cam out from among the bushes, he lookit sae soor, that Sir Walter turned round and flate on me for laughing ; but if I was to dee for it, I cudna help it ; and Sir Walter turned his back to the gentle- man and laughed himsel, joost as bad as me ; but the gentleman never laughed a bit. Aweel, we turned to gang hame again, and a' the way doon the walk tlie * A moss house or rustic seat. SUNNING. 209 gentleman he keepit looking at Maida, and when he got to Abbotsford, he ordered his carriage and gied aw a." " Well, that was better sj)ort than we are likely to have to-day, Tom, for the cluds are beginning to rise, and the wind is getting up ; more's the pity, for it was the finest morning I ever saw, and now we are late, and have lost twae hours. But here comes the maister and the strange gentleman with him, he that does not know a fish from a cow, and who was broke by ane of thae whitlings." The little party being now entirely assembled, agreed that, as the day was beginning to alter, it was a pity to disturb the water till they saw clearly how it would turn out ; so the fishermen remained with the boats and leisters at Craigover boat-hole ; and, in the mean- time, I, Harry Otter, thought I could not do better than explain the operation of sunning to my friend Mr. Tin- tern, as there was now some chance of gaining his attention ; so we sat down, and I commenced as fol- lows : — Sunning, as I have told you, is a mode of taking salmon with a spear by sun light ; and vast numbers are captured in this manner, particularly in the upper part of the Tweed, where fish are more easily seen than in the lower, from the comparative shallowness of the water in which they lie. This sport does not begin till the river is quite low and clean, and useless for the fly. To succeed perfectly requires a bright and calm day. You cannot see a fish lying even at a very moderate depth when the surface p 210 INSTEUCTIONS. of the water is ruffled by the wind. As soon as the river is thus fairly in order, take the first good day that occurs ; you may not have many more ; and if you have, you will not mend the matter by waiting too long, as after a continuance of hot weather a green vesietable substance rises from the bottom, which lessens the transparency of the water. If you have a man sufficiently clever with the leister, let him stand in the water at the head of the stream whilst you ai'e trying below, that he may strike the fish which endeavour to pass out of it into another cast. If you have no such man, and there are very few who can see a fish pass up a rapid gorge, you may hang a net in the stream ; but you must not bar the river by stretching it quite across, as that is illegal. If you sun a large pool where there is deep water, and various runs and eddies in it, it is advisable to jDlace nets in such situations as are most favourable for fish to strike into when they are disturbed by the boats, and the other means in use for frightening them. The pass being thus in part secured and all prepared, the next thing is to rout about, and endeavour to frighten the fish by every means in your power, so that they may hide themselves under the rocks and stones, or even lay, as they sometimes do, half stupified beside them, when you may strike them with the leister. To effect tliis, it is usual to begin by rowing your boat or boats over the pool with some white object hanging in the water from the stern: the sculls of horses are in high repute for this service ; and I dare say a stuffed otter would be excellent, though I never tried it. A TRUE HIGHLANDER. 211 ^VTien jou tliiiik you have created sufficient terror by these means, you may look about for the fish, and the sport begins. You may manage your boat with the leister, as in burning by night, of which hereafter : but you do not, as in that case, necessarily work her broad- side in front ; and one artist is sufficient for the amuse- ment, though more may partake of it. If the leisterer knows the water well, he puts the l^oat gently over the rocks and stones, where the fish endeavour to conceal themselves. Sometimes they get under a large stone and are entirely hidden ; generally they are partially concealed under smaller stones, part of the body and tail only being seen ; so that it requires some dexterity to strike them properly, or indeed at all. Some will lie under the shelf of a rock quite open to the view ; in which case you must be careful, when you strike, that a prong of the leister does not rest upon the ledge of a rock above, instead of on the salmon. Others I have seen lying fair and open in the bare channel ; but these wiU not lie to the leister so well as those in the situations I have mentioned. If you do not strike a fish near the centre of his body, you are never very sure of lifting him. The late StafFa, before he came to his title, was once sunning the Pavilion-water with John Lord Somerville, and perceiving that the fisherman in their boat had struck a salmon that was likely to get off the spear when he might attempt to lift hmi ; in the true spirit of a Highlander, and without saying a word to any one, plunged at once into the Tweed with his clothes on, dived down to the fish, and brought him into the boat Avith his hands. '' A Highlander can p 2 212 NET AND HARPOON. never pass a seal, a deer, or a salmon, without having a trial of skill with him." To take a fish whose tail aloue is seen projecting from the hiding place, provide yourself with a small steel harpoon, the barbs of which shut into the shaft when the point enters and makes the wound, but which sjDread laterally when you pull it back; tie a line of small whip-cord to this weapon, and fix the butt of the har- poon itself in the point of a rude rod made for the pur- pose. You may then push it into the tail of the fish, when the little spear will come from the rod ; and you may pull out your salmon with the line attached to it. There are some very large stones in the Tweed, some- times two or three lying together, under which salmon can totally conceal themselves ; but you will easily discover if there are any underneath them by the air-bubbles which they cast up to the surface of the water when you poke with your leister shaft. My method of taking these fish was to throw a casting net over the stone or stones that concealed them, and then to poke them out with the pole of the leister. The net should be strong, or they will swim clean through it, as if it were a cob- Aveb ; in thx'owing the net, you must cast above the hiding stone, allowing for the current, which will take it down some little distance before it sinks to the bottom, according to the depth and strength of the water. Of course this method may also apply to fish 'partially con- cealed. In sunning, as in burning, begin at the lower part of the river that belongs to you, so that you may again come across those fish that escape upwards, and may not VORACITY OF EELS. 213 go beyond your water ; and you will have a more successful day of it, if you wait till your neighbour beloAV has sunned his water. If the river continues low for some time, disturbed fish will be continually coming forward, and you may go over your water two or three times at different periods, till you have caught nearly every fish that takes up liis seat in it. If a salmon gets off your leister wounded, being weak, you may be sure he will go down the river; and the eels will come out instantly, if it be hot weather, and follow the blood : if the fish is badly Avounded, although not dead, the said eels will soon settle the matter, and eat out his flesh, leaving the skin alone for speculators to make mermaids with.* You will see the eels by dozens hanging thick on him like the sticks in a bundle of faggots ; but they are too small to be taken with a salmon spear, and do not resemble the fine silver eels in the Kennet and some of our English streams, but are browner in colour, and have large heads. The Scotch have a strong antipathy to them, and never use them for food. But they should be re- moved from the river if possible, as they make great havoc in the spawning beds. This information having been briefly given, Mr. Tintem went up the river with his fishing rod, as the sky was not yet clear enough for the main sport : after * Some people will remember an exhibition of this sort many years ago in St. James's Street, in London. It was very inge- niously constructed, though far from alluring. It was placed under a glass, and created some sensation amongst the naturalists, as mermaids ought to do. p 3 214 TOM purdie's sarcasm. having absented himself for a considerable time, he returned to the party with a fish, which, being too large for his basket, he held with his handkerchief, a corner of which he had passed through the gills. This fish he lifted up before Tom Purdie, with an air of success that I never saw him assume before, saying, " Now, Mr. Purdie, I have conquered a sea trout at last, and here he is ! " Tom was aU aghast, for before the fish was laid on the ground he thought he saw what he called " a very nice new-swoomed gilse ; " but, upon a closer inspection, his practised eye soon descried the difference ; for it was a real river trout, of above four pounds weight, and unusually bright in colour. Tom turned him over and viewed the other side, then turned him over again, and viewed both sides with great seeming interest ; he then examined his teeth and gills, and uttered a short groan ; pulling out his snuff-box from his pocket, and having solaced himself with a pinch, he took a still more minute survey, looking alternately at the fish and Mr. Tintern : at length, casting a reproachful glance at the animal, he said pithily, " Od, and to be taen by the like o' him ! " The sky was now clear again, and the wind, whicli had only been brought on by a few rising clouds, had subsided. Mr. Tintern, however, being too good- humoured to take Purdie's sarcasm to heart, was so charmed with his success that he would not join the leisterers, but preferred fishing with the fly ; at the same time he delicately hinted to me, that he thought there was something a little sanguinary in the use of such a MR. TINTERN. 215 weapon, though he owned that the invariable custom of knocking the fish on the head immediately they were lifted made their sufferings very short, and certainly, he thought, not exceeding those of sheep and other animals in the way they are commonly killed for the table. He then seceded, and I promised to join liini at Melrose. We went over the Webbs, and Craigover boat-hole, setting nets and using various devices to make the fish conceal themselves, in the way that has been mentioned above. Upon the whole, we were tolerably successful ; but having already described the process of sunning, and being of a compassionate dis- position, I will trouble no one with a relation of the particulars of our transactions, especially as I mean to give a flaming description of what is called " burning the water," towards the end of these pages. I went home from Mertoun by Melrose Abbey, to take Mr. Tintern along with me, according to agree- ment. As he was in the habit of fishing; and sketchino; alternately, I surmised he would establish himself in the church-yard, and fall to work with his crayons : nor was I deceived ; for when I came to the wicket gate, I descried him very busy indeed ; whilst a corpulent little gentleman in a snuff-coloured coat, with a cane in his hand, was looking over his shoulder. As I thought some amusing contrast of character would take place, I listened to what was going on ; in fact, the little man's gestures were so grotesque that I was willing to enjoy them as long as possible. He would stand still and look over the artist's paper with a scrutinising expres- sion ; then he would draw back a little, and stamp his p 4 216 SUSPECTED OF HOWKING TRICKS. cane on the ground with all the force and dignity of a baillie. In the meantime our friend was so absorbed in liis work that he seemed wholly unconscious of this person's presence, till he was aroused by the little man himself, who said, in a loud tone, and with an air of consummate consequence, stamping a tombstone at the same time with his stalF of office, — " Weel, friend, what may ye be doing here ? " Tintern, looking back over his shoulder, said, in his absent manner, — "I think he must have been buried at the eastern end of the Abbey ; am I right, my good sir?" "Aye, aye — I thought so, — I ken weel eneuch what ye're after ; ye are ane o' thae chiels that gang aboot to raise the dead bodies o' the departed corpses ; — Od, that's a gude yane !" Tintern {still sketchinfj, and speaking abstractedly,^ " I'd give something to see old Michael Scott's tomb." " Nae dout ye would ; but I '11 tak' gude tent to hae a sure hand or twae to watch yer howking tricks the night." So saying, " the little round fat oily man " marched off with great dignity, muttering, " Od, that's a gude yane ! disturbing the dead bodies o' the corpses ! He shall gang afore the Sherra'." It seems my unlucky friend was doomed to a continued interruption of his studies ; for no sooner had the man in office departed, than some old women came and stood over him for a very considerable time, and occasionally interrupted his view ; one of them at length said pithily to her companions, — " Hech, sirs, this is idle wark ! let's awa to the praaties." TROLLING. 217 Such interruptions, though trivial in themselves, are sometimes a little troublesome to a studious man, and happy had it been for Mr. Tintern had he met with no other ; but in a short time afterwards the church-yard was fidl of all the idle boys in the town, who fairly hooted him, and compelled him to leave the place, which he did under the best protection I was able to afford him. He called them " naughty boys," and they shouted amain, " Corpse lifter ! corpse lifter ! " having been previously so instructed, as may readily be guessed. This disagreeable attack annoyed Mr. Tintern so seriously, that he resolved to leave Mebose the next day, which I was sincerely sorry for. I could not, however, change his resolution, as he seemed to think that he was a marked man, and that he should enjoy tranquillity no longer in that country. I got up early the following morning to bid him farewell, and just in time to prevent his going into the Glasgow coach instead of the London mail. He seemed sorry to part with me ; and, as he was getting into the carriage, he begged the mail-coachman not to drive fast, or to whip his horses. I felt a blank at his departure ; for he was a most agreeable and clever gentleman, and not the less en- tertaining for his eccentricities, which appeared only from time to time, and interfered with no one's humour. TROLLING. In the Tweed, and indeed in some other rivers, they have a method of fishing which is called TroUhif) in 218 SHY OF THE HOOK. Scotland, but Cross Angling in England, where it is practised with the natural May-fly for catching trout. In trolling for salmon, two men stand opposite to one another on either side of the stream, each with a rod in hand ; their lines are joined together, and from the bow which this junction creates about half-a-dozen flies are suspended vertically. Of course there can be no casting of the line ; but the flies are hung in the stream, and passed over it, the fishermen trailing them, and acting in concert ; thus, by means of the number of flies, and the saving of time by not having the line to throw, a great quantity of water is gone over in a short space of time. But this sweeping method has its drawbacks, and very serious ones they are. Out of the number of fish that offer, very few are taken ; many get only a touch of tlie hook, and escape, and are thus entirely lost to the proprietor of the part of the river where this occurs ; for, generally speaking, fish so alarmed quit the water the same night, and travel upwards. I remember a singular instance of this occurred to me in the Pavilion- water. The river was very low and clear at the time ; so much so, that it was in good order for sunning, and therefore in no state for fish to travel in. I chanced, however, to hook a salmon with a fly, which, after being played a little, got off" the hook : there was a cairn just above the spot where this occurred, and I told my fisherman to set the net belonging to it that night ; he did so with a very bad grace, assuring me that it Avas perfectly useless ; or, as he was pleased to express himself, " just perfect nonsense." Nevertheless the fish. A CURIOUS OCCURRENCE. 219 having started from his stream, was caught in it that night. John Crerar mentioned to me another instance where a salmon, having broken a fisherman's line, went down the Tay for a mile, and then up the Tummel tlu'ee miles, and was there caught the day following by the same fisherman, who thus regained his fly with two or three fathoms of line attached to it. On the other hand, I know of three well-attested instances of salmon having been caught almost im- mediately after they had broken the fisherman's line ; but I conclude these fish were touched at first in a j)art that was scarcely sensitive. A very curious circum- stance of this sort occurred in Isle Isla, where a gen- tleman was broken by a salmon, which he caught im- mediately afterwards ; upon landing it, he found, to his amazement, that he had not touched the fish itself the second time, but that his hook was linked in the one left in his mouth previously. This was a very delicate affair ; for had not the pull upon the fish been moderate and even, he must inevitably have escaped. As for my own practice, I never recollect having risen a fish a second time that had touched my hook previously. "What I have said regarding the number of fish lost or set down in trolling is so universally acknowledged, that this style of angling is seldom practised, except, indeed, in fishing for kelts in very fidl waters, when no one can throw completely over the casts without the use of a boat. In this state of the river the flies are drawn down the stream ; but when the water subsides, they are trailed up it. It is practised also a day or tAvo 220 HAKLING. before close time, when the loss of fish off the hook is immaterial, as far as regards future sport. Ill the Tay, and some other large rivers, there is another method of fishing with a fly in full water, which is called Harling. Two rods are laid in the bottom of a boat, and hang over the stern, with a large fly attached to each line. The boatman then rows against the stream to the right and left of the river in a zigzag direction, but still letting the boat fall gradually down the river, so that he passes over no fish that have not previously seen the flies. The rower judges his pace by the objects on the banks. When fish rise they hook themselves. Those who practise this method are ge- nerally fishermen who have been working the previous night, and like it because they have not the fatigue of holding or throwing the rod. They fancy, also, that having two flies, they have a double advantage ; but this is a deception, because both flies follow each other in the same direction. Without much fear of contra- diction, I pronounce this same harling to be a most prodigiously stupid method of proceeding, and little su- perior to setting night lines. I tried it once in the Tay, but no more harlins; for me. To do the Tweed folks justice, I never saw it practised there ; and I can only recommend it to those liberal persons who wish to drive the salmon from their own waters to those of theu' neigh- bours above. What, alas ! becomes of the beautiful wielding of the rod, thrown (albeit heavy, and difficult to manage) with a grace and dexterity that indicates no exertion, the fly not falling like a four-and-twenty pounder, but just BAIT FISHING. 221 kissing the surface of the water, and moving to and fro in a manner so seducing as to beguile the most wary salmon of every atom of prudence ! FISHING WITH BAIT, MINNOW, AND PARRS TAIL. When the water is too low for the fly, and quite clear, then begins the bait or worm fishing in Tweed. The tackle consists of a large hook at the end of your line, and a smaller one above it, placed like the lip-hook in minnow tackle. These are threaded with worms. The manner of putting them on will be better learnt from the fisherman on the river side, than it can be explained in writing. When the water is in right order, that is, low and clear, as I have said above, and the weather fresh, a clever fisherman may glean the river of almost all the fish that are left in the streams. Tolerably large shot beino- fixed towards the end of the line, and the worms themselves being heavy, it requires some dex- terity to throw a good distance without accidents. To obviate these, and to effect your purpose, begin with a line of a moderate length, and tuck out a few folds of the reel, holding them fast with your hand when you bring your rod back, but letting them go just as you have discharged your throw. Thus the line is short at first, but the weight of the shot and worms carry out the folds to the extent required. Having thus cast beyond the run of the salmon, let the stream carry round your bait easily, without any jerk on your part whatever, or any further motion than humouring it towards the shore. Contract the line as the bait comes 222 INSTRUCTIONS. near you, by gathering it up in folds witli your left hand, and holding them fast against the rod with the fingers of your right, letting them go again at the proper time when you cast, in the manner I have before de- scribed. Thus you may throw a very long line Avithout endangering its safety by coming in contact with the ground or any objects in your rear. You may fish to any depth you please merely by elevating and lowering the point of your rod, according to the run of the water. When the weathei' and water are quite fit for the sport, the fish seizes the bait briskly, and returns with it to its seat or elsewhere : you must give him the line by pulling from the reel with your left hand, and letting it run smoothly between the fingers of your right. A check at this time may lose him ; but let him alone a few seconds, and he will have gorged the hook ; then strike and kill him as soon as you can : he is safe enough. Fresh open weather is the best for this sport ; but fish will sometimes take well even in a frost. Many excellent and credible fishermen have informed me that they have had good sport with the worm in northern rivers, and in those of Ireland, when the water was thick. Their testimony I do not doubt ; I only say fish are not caught with the worm, or bait, as it is called, when the water is in a foul state in Tweed. I remember a gentleman applying to me for leave to take a day's sal- mon fishing, which I granted. There had been rain the day before, and a spate came down in the morning. I thought this unlucky; but he was of the contrary opinion, and rejoiced in the change ; " For," said he, " if I sit on the i^oint of a cairn, I shall catch every travelling fish that MINNOW AND PARR'S TAIL. 223 passes with a worm, as I have often done in Ireland." This was a new light to Charles Purdie and myself. Worms were given him in abundance; an excellent cairn selected for the sport ; and there my gentleman sat the livelong day without having an offer. Old Richard Wilson could have introduced him into the landscape with effect, for he was picturesque and well placed; but as a fisherman, says Charlie, " he is useless a' thc- gither." However, the cairn is a laudable monument of his patience and perseverance. FISHING WITH MINNOW AND PARR S TAIL. Salmon do not take the minnow or the parr's tail so well in the Tweed as they do in the Tay, nor so well in the upper parts of Tweed as they do in the lower. The minnow, in low water, is preferable to the parr's tail ; and it should be worked in the same manner as in trout fishing, only not quite with so quick a motion. It is not necessary to use more than two hooks ; namely, the large hook that passess through the minnow, and the lip hook. Shot should be put on the casting line about a foot and a half from the bait — fewer or inore according to the strength of the stream. What is called the parr's tail is a pretty liberal allowance of the said little fish, consisting of a diagonal cut from the shoulder to the anal fin ; so that in fact you have all the firm part of the fish, discarding the head and the stomach. In full water I think this bait is preferable to the minnow ; and it has the advantage of 224 MINNOW AND PARK. a much firmer hold of the hook, not breaking like the soft parts of the minnow. Clean salmon will take this bait whenever the river is in order for the fly, or perhaps a little before it is so, even when the water is slightly discoloured, or, as the fishermen call it, drumly. But foul fish, including kelts, never take it Avell in the upj^er parts of the Tweed, unless the water is clear, though they Avill take it in a drumly water in the Tay ; nor can any sport be expected with it in very warm weather. The best state of the water, and the most convenient time, is between the fly and bait fishing ; that is, when it is rather too low for the one, but not low enough for the other. The best weather is a fresh day, with wind to act upon the surface of the deep pools. In summer the proper hour is early in the morning. After a night's burning, salmon take the minnow, small parr, or parr's tail, particularly well in the streams. The best way of casting the minnow is precisely that which I have indicated in my instructions for fishing with the worm. As in a deer forest, however extensive, every burn, rock, glen, moss, and mountain has its distinct appel- lation, so that you can describe with the greatest accu- racy where a hart has been slain, or any signal event has happened ; so in a salmon river, every stream and pool in which these delectable fish lie is called by a name that either distinguishes its character, or relates to some event or circumstance which tradition has not always preserved. Some casts are called after the names of persons who were drowned in them : there is one such, BLACK MEG OF DARNWICK. 225 yclept " Meg's Hole," some little distance above the Melrose bridge. I wonder who Meg was ; but Charles Purdie, who is coming up the river, is right sure to tell me some nonsense or another anent it, so I will sound him. " Well, CharHe, I see you have been putting all the boats in place, so sit down upon the bank here and rest yourself: pulling a boat up a strong stream is hard work, and pulling several over is harder. Now, tell me why the pool I fished the other day is called Meg's Hole ; but stick to truth, mind, and do not let me hear any of your foolish tales." " Aweel, then, I'll tell ye the hale truth. Ye'll hae heard o' Thomas the Rymer, him that in days long gaen by lived at Erlston *, and was taen awa' by the fairies, and is wi' them at this day ; we hae Sir Walter's word for it. Black Meg of Darnwick lived wi' this Thomas, who, ye ken, was an enchanter ; and Meg learned some awfu' words of him, and also power as a witch. Ae time she was seen sitting upon ane of the towers, aboon the Elfin glen, in the shape of a raven ; at anither, she came doon to the Tweed at the gloamin' in the likeness of a lang-craiged heron, flaj)ping her muckle wings, and uttering dreidfu' shrieks ; and again she was a cormorant, perched upon a blastit tree on the moor. I have seen her mysel' mair than ance." " Seen her, man ! why you said she lived with Thomas the Rymer ; and it is some centuries since he was taken away by the fairies." " Aweel, aweel, that may be ; but as sure as deid I * Formerly Ercildonn. Q 226 FIRING OF meg's TOWER. aince saw her in her ain proper shape ; and she had a long neb, and a muckle moutli, and a red petticoat on, and she held a leister under her oxter, as if she war gaen to the burning ; and wha kens but she may live till this day ? for her deid body was never found, nor the corj^se-light * seen. There are three towers on the muir a long way aboon the Elfin glen ; ye'll hae seen them yoursel' ; and Meg used to live in ane of these towers by turns : no one kent in which she was, and nobody cared to speer. At nightfall she woiUd come doon the glen to seek thae grey stanes f that the fairies cast their cantrips with, and muckle scaith she wrought, — rotting the sheep of ae body, and takkin the milk from the kye of anither ; so the lads waylaid her wi' flails, and pitchforks, and sic- like gear. They chased her aAV the night in the glen, up and doon the braes and thickets, and through the water; but they could never grip her, and they came back at skreigh o' day wi' torn plaids and broken shins, all covered wi' mire ; and some o' them had a sair sickness afterwards, and repentit that they ever middled wi' her." " Oh, of course ; but what became of her at last, Charlie?" * When a dead body was lost, it was supposed that a light ap- peared over it at night, to indicate its position. f These fairy stones, as they are called, are to be found in the Elfin glen, where the maid of Avenel is said to have appeared. This romantic spot belongs to Lord Somerville, and is in the orna- mental grounds belonging to his house called the Pavilion. The stones are of a grey colour, and of various curious shapes, sometimes closely resembling articles in common use, such as tea cups, saucers, &c. ; they are supposed to contain some charm, and are constantly sought for to this day by all sorts of people. meg's death. 227 " Why, then, when she persistit in her foul ways, some o' thae freebooters, who feared neither witch, war- lock, nor deil, made a raid into her country, and pit a fire round each of the towers *, and made the ane she was in too het to hand her, and out she ran wi' awfu' yells, skelping owre the moor, and so doon to the Elfin glen, where ane o' these same reivers, who had a flaming firebrand in liis hond, wounded her ahint wi' it ; and the deidly nightshade still grows in the place where her blood was spilt. Then they drave her through the glen, and so doon the brae above a deep pool in Tweed, and pushed her in wi' a pole and a firebrand : so she cam to her end by wood, fire, and water. " The pool was draggit in the mornin', but her body was never found ; and many people watched all night for a lang time, and the corpse-light never appeared ; nor was her wraith ever seen, except by mysel' and my feyther at Trequair, and Walter of Darnwick, who saw it howking a grave wi' many ither wicked spirits round it on the tap of Eildon Hills. " So the pool goes by the name of ' Meg's Hole ' to this day ; and when ye liowkit the muckle sawmont that ran ye doon to the Cauld pool, ye ken that her spirit tried to drive him through the farther arch of Melrose Bridge, but ye were owre canny for it." The earliest method of taking fish, previous to the invention of either hooks or nets, was that used by the Egyptians, by means of a spear resembling a trident. A sculptured stone, excavated at Chester in 1738, and * The thi'ee towers are still standing in the place indicated. Q 2 228 THE LEISTER. engraved in Lyson's history of the county as a Roman remain, represents a fisherman with his spear and basket. I will now describe the salmon spear at present in use. It was formerly called waster ; but that term is nearly out of use, except by the old fishermen, and it is now better known by the name of leister. It resembles a trident in its general appearance ; but has five prongs, instead of three, made of very stout iron : there is only one barb to each prong, as two would tear the fish too much in extricating them. This weapon is fastened to the end of a pole more or less long, according to the depth of the water in which it is intended to be used ; sixteen feet is the general length, and it is not easy to CANTING THE BOAT. 229 see or strike a fish at a greater depth ; but in sunning I have sometimes tied a light rope to the top of the jDole, and gone deeper than this with success, but then it was when the river was unusually clear. The op- posite woodcut represents the cleik and the leister : the latter is rather narrower, and altogether of a neater make than those in general use. In burning, the boat is managed with this leister ; but no one can make use of it in this way who has not learnt to work it with a pole, — which art is termed canting, and is, I believe, little understood except in the Tweed : in the Tay and the Annan they know nothing of the matter. Now the pole is not used as in punting ; but the man who manages the boat, instead of shifting his place, stands up or sits down at the stern ; he keeps his eye upon her head, and forces her straight up the rapids, pressing the pole in the direction in which he would steer with a rudder. This is in a great measure effected with a twist of the body. If he does not keep her straight in her course, the current takes her at the side, whips her round in an instant, and down she goes, the deuce knows where, head foremost; nor can you resume your position till you again bring her head up the stream. In forcing your boat up very strong water, at every fresh tlu'ust you must catch up the pole and put it in again very quickly ; for when you are not pushing the boat will recede if the rapids are heavy, and thus you may lose way. This, I think, can be done better by sit- ting than standing, as you are nearer your work. In Q 3 230 STRENUOUS, BUT UNFORTUNATE. this manner you may thrust your little craft where no oars could take hold of the water. To perform this requires vast practice, and accordingly it was a considerable time before I mastered it com- pletely, although I had been accustomed to punting on the Isis in my younger days. The rapids had it all their own way for months, or more. As you use the canting pole, which is shod with a heavy iron spike, so you must use the leister ; only with more caution, lest you should injure the prongs. As a proof of the difficulty of this operation, I will mention that I once i^ut the canting pole into the hands of an English gentleman, who was a good rower, and, as he asserted, a good punter also. We were sunning a strong stream called the Carrywheel, and I had placed Charles Purdie at its gorge, to leister such fish as might attempt to pass up it from the fright given by the dis- turbance below. In a few seconds the head of the boat, not being held straight up the stream, went round like a shot, and so down the river. My friend was perfectly confused, and did not know what on earth should be done; so, as we were losing way rapidly, I took the pole and brought her head up again. Still lie would not give in, and was determined to have another trial. Well, he pushed here, and he pushed there, and with these strenuous efforts succeeded in describing pretty accurately in his course what in Gothic architecture is called the zigzag moulding, losing way, however, at every angle. Not having taken any notice of the objects on the banks, he did not precisely know whereabouts he was ; A STRIKING INCIDENT. 231 but his exertions, simply as exertions, were highly laudable. AVTien he had permitted the boat to fall down into easy water, he had some little command over her, and of this he was right proud. As time was precious, I resumed the command, and put the boat up again with my leister. When we came up to the fisherman, my novice said, with considerable exultation, '' Charlie, did you see me cant ? " " Houte, toute, mon, you canna cant ava ; she was aye ganging doon," was the uncourteous response. Having described our method of managing the boat, I will endeavour to exj^lain the manner in which we strike the salmon. The leister should not be held firm in the grasp, but sent loosely through the hands, as its own weight in falling will be more effective than any force you can give it with a thrust.* You may think otherwise, perhaps. Well, then, take your own way ; hold the weapon firmly and determinedly ; you are going to do great things, you fancy. But what happens ? The water proves deeper than you had calculated upon, and, not touching the bottom with your spear as a support, in you go, your head taking the lead, and the rest of your members following the playful example. * The Droit lately contained the following: — " At the moment that an omnibus was passing on Friday through the Rue Mont- martre, under a house, No. 63., that was undergoing repairs, a pole more than thirty feet in length slipped from the scaffolding at the fourth story, and fell perpendicularly on the omnibus, passed right through the body, and entered so deeply between the stones of the pavement that the horses were stopped on the moment, the vehicle being literally nailed to the ground ; by a providential chance none of the passengers were injured ! ! ! " Q 4 232 KAKE HOOKS. Strike your fish over the shoulders if you can, and bring your boat in such a position as to make the stroke as vertical as possible. When you have fixed him, hold him to the ground a space ; then run your hands down the pole, making the distance between them and the fish as short as you conveniently can ; lift the animal with his head uj)permost, by which means he will come out lighter, and such action as he may make with his tail will assist you rather than himself. If you do not bear in mind this instruction, and choose to have a go at a salmon at a little distance from you, as having a way of your own, I will tell you what will probal)ly happen from this freak also. The stroke will drive back the boat, and you and the fish will part company. You may have struck him, perhaps, — not impossible that ; but your intended victim twists off in a moment, and says as plainly as a salmon can speak, " levro I'incommodo." I should observe, that in burning the water by night there is no time to fix every fish to the ground, and that they are then most visually lifted quickly ; indeed, as the boat falls gradually down the stream, it generally comes over them conveniently enough. To these various methods of taking fish, I must add the destruction by means of rake-hooks. The tackle is very simple : it consists of two strong hooks, about two or three inches long, tied back to back, and fastened to twisted gut, on which are put five or six large shot, at equal distances from each other. The fisherman, with a strong rod, throws the line, with these bare hooks at- tached to it, about a foot beyond any salmon that he may RAKE HOOKS. 233 discover lying, and then with a sudden jerk draws the hook into him if he can, and gets him to the land if he is able. Clean fish are sometimes taken in this manner, and most fishermen are provided with the tackle. In a very- low water in the summer, when fly-fishing might have been said to be over, I once hooked a good salmon in the Quarry stream above Melrose Bridge. As a fish was at that time a great rarity, I was particularly cautious in leading him ; nevertheless, with all my care, the hook, not having a firm hold, came away from him after I had played him a considerable time. Purdie saw him lying in rather an exhausted state in the same stream, which was shallow, and, without saying any thing to me, to my great surprise, seized hold of my casting line and broke off the lower end of it ; opened my book ; took a pah* of rake-hooks from it ; tied them on to the line, and, at the second throw, tucked them into the salmon ; put the rod into my hands, and I kiUed the fish after all. All this to the Southern ear sounds like poaching of the most flagitious description ; but a salmon is a fish of passage, and if you do not get him to-day he wuU be gone to-morrow. The Tweed used to let for above 12,000/. a year ; judge, then, in what a wholesale manner these fish are caught by long nets and other sweeping modes ; yet in what i^rofusion they continue to be found ! You may just as well think of preserving herrings or mackerel as these delicious creatures ; and there would be no objection to your taking 3378 salmon at one haul, if fortune would so favour you, as Com- 234 LIBERAL ADVICE. mander Ross did at Boothia Felix on the 26th of July, 1831. Keep Close time strictly ; kill no spawning fish ; tamper not with foul ones of any sort; preserve the fry ; send the black fishers to Iceland ; but catch as many salmon as you can, i^ecte si possis (meaning with a rod), si lion, quocunque modo, — that is, with a net or leister, and so forth. EFFECT OF CHANGE OF WATER. 235 CHAP. XI. 'Tis night, dread night, and weary Nature lies So fast as if she never were to rise ; Lean wolves forget to howl at night's pale noon ; No wakeful dogs bark at the silent moon, Nor bay the ghosts which glide in horror by To view the caverns where their bodies lie ; The ravens perch, and no presages give. Nor to the windows of the dying cleave ; In vaults the walking fires extinguish'd lie ; The stars, heaven's sentry, wink and seem to die." Lee. Before I describe what is called " burning the water," I will make an observation that may be of service to the rod fisher. It is, that salmon which have been dis- turbed in the night with boats and lights wiU draw into the streams above, and take the fly all the better for this disturbance the following morning ; and as bm-ning always takes place when the water is very low, they probably will not be found far from the place of the nocturnal operations. Trout also wiU take better for having been routed about, and for change of situation ; a remarkable in- stance of which I witnessed a few years ago at Castle Combe. A hole under some hatches by a mill was emptied of its water, that the trout might be caught and taken lower down the stream, more out of the way of poachers. This was done by means of buckets, and in doino- it the water became thick and white, and '236 THE BUllNING. the fish partook of the same colour. I sent thirty -five brace of these fish, all similar in size, a considerable distance lower down the stream, when they Avere put under a bridge near my house. Many of them died. But in three hours after the removal I caught eight of the others with a fly without moving from the sjjot : neither the size nor the colour of the fish could possibly be mistaken. THE BURNING. " Charlie, Charlie," cried Thomas Jamieson, " there's fine sport going on the night ; our maister's minded to burn the water, for she is low enough, ye ken; so ane o' us will hae to gang and split the twa auld tar barrels for lights, an' the ither mun slidder up to Abbotsford and tell your uncle Tam what's ganging forrat, and say that he has to meet us at the Carrywheel at aight o'clock preceesely. Charlie, ye'd best do the lights yoursel', and I'll hae to win to Darnick, and get the wasters aw new sharpened. Sandy and Rob will come nae doobt, and we should hae auld Wat too ; but if he has been fou yestreen, he'll no be worth a bawbee." " Ye need na fash yoursel' aboot the like o' him, for he had a wee drap. I saw him the morn riddling a cart fu' o' sand lyin' again the house end, which he said he was making ready for biggm ; and as I was coming awa' auld Janet gie me a Avag Avi' her finger, and I gist steppit in. ' What do ye think ? ' says she ; ' the auld vagabun was fou yestreen, and he gaed out as he thought unseen by ony ; a' watched him, and he hid his siller amang the sand, for he aye thinks I grap his pouches BOAT USED FOR BURNING. 237 for it. After lie was awa' I sliddered, out and fun' his purse ; there war seeven shillings and a groat in it ; so I gaed to auld Mary Butler's, and bought yetmeal for the bairns' parritch wi' it, and ye see the auld cuffer is riddling the sand, thinking to find his purse. He'll no be worth a rigmaree the night for fishing.' " " Aweel, Charlie, Janet says true ; but wha mun we hae to lead hame the fish ? Tarn Hardy or Rob Colyard would mak' good fun. Tarn, he'll tell us that lang story aboot the scramidge, and the muckle fish he killed in Leader-water, that misured nine inches atween the een ; and if we hae Rob, he'll get a stick and be gaun through his braidsword exercise, and tell us how he did wi' the twa Frenchmen on the field of Waterloo ; so Rob may meet us wi' his cart to tak' hame the fish, when we come to Brig-end pool. We mun now tak' up the twa boats to the Carrywheel, where they will bide our coming at night; — and look here, mon: when we are in a sweet wi' pooing them up, we will tak' a wee drap out o' this black bottle." The boat in general use for burning at night is larger than the rod fishing boats, as more room and steadiness is required. In the centre of it, close to the side on which the leisterers strike the fish, is a pole fixed ver- tically, with a frame at top of it formed of ribs of iron to contain the combustibles. Tlu'ee men are sufficient to man the boat ; one at the head, another at the stern, as boatmen and leisterers, and the third at the centre to kill the fish and trim the fire. But it will contain more men, if necessary. The remainder of the day having been spent in 238 A NIGHT SCENE. making the arrangements, and the proper hour being now come, Harry Otter and CharHe Purdie went out from the Pavilion to meet the party, who were to as- semble at eight o'clock about a mile and a half up the river. The night was most favourable, it being utterly dark, and not a sough of air stirring. With caution and with difficulty they felt their way step by step at the rocky base of the Scaur, where it dips into the river, till they descried the boat which was to take them across it at the Brig-end pool. The clanking of the chain as it was loosened and flung on the planks sounded harshly in the silence of night ; the oars dipped duly, and they were soon on the opposite side of the river, by which means they cut oiF a great sweep of the haugh, *' a huge half moon, a monstrous cantle out," and pro- ceeded in a more direct line to their mark. They went on in darkness through the chilling dews, now and then stumbling into the patches of furze which were scattered over the haugh ; soon they begin to hear the rushing of the waters through the gorge of the Carry- wheel : now it breaks full and loud upon the ear, for they are arrived at the base of the wooded brae that overhangs the cast. Two groups of men, but dimly seen, here await their arrival ; one consists of spectators lying on the ground with their plaids thrown athwart their bodies, and the other of the heroes who were to figui'e in the grand operation : these latter were sitting on the boats, and on the masses of rock beside them on the water edge. All being now ready, a light was struck ; and the spark being applied to rags steeped in pitch, and to THE BLAZING UP. 239 fragments of tar-barrels, they blazed up at once amid the gloom, like the sudden flash from the crater of a volcano. The ruddy light glared on the rough features and dark dresses of the leisterers in cutting flames directly met by black shadows, — an effect which those will best understand who in the Eternal City have seen the statues in the Vatican by torch-light. Extending itself, it reddened the shelving rocks above, and glanced upon the blasted arms of the trees, slowly perishing in their struggle for existence amongst the stony crevices ; it glowed upon the hanging wood, on fir, birch, broom, and bracken, half veiled, or half revealed, as they were more or less prominent. The form of things remote from the concentrated light Avas dark and dubious ; even the trees on the summit of the brae sank in ob- scurity. The principals now sprang into the boats. Harry Otter stood at the head, and Charlie Purdie at the stern. These men regulated the course of the craft with their leisters ; the auxiliaries were stationed between them, and the light was in the centre by the boat side. The logs, steeped as they were in pitch, crackled and burned fiercely, sending up a column of black smoke. As the rude forms of the men rose up in their dark attire, wielding their long lei- ters, with the streaks of light that glared partially upon them, and surrounded as they were by the shades of night, you might almost have fancied yourself in the realms below, with Pluto and his grim associates, embarked on the Stygian lake. But as the sports began, and as the Scotch accent prevailed, the illusion passed away ; for no poet, that I am aware of, 240 TOM rURDIE DIVERTS HIMSELF. has made the above swarthy and mysterious personages express themselves In the language of Tweedside ; nor could one fancy salmon in the Styx, though they might well disport in the streams of the happy fields beyond. " Now, my lads," says the master, " take your places. Tom, stand you next to me ; Sandy, go on the other side of Tom ; and do you, Jamie, keep in the middle, and take tent to cap the boats well over the rapids. Rob, do you and Tom Purdie keep good lights and fell the fish. Halloo, Tom, you have smuggled a leister into the boat for your own use." " Ay, ay, that have I, joust for mine ain de version, ye ken." " Well, well, you may just keep it, for you are a stout chiel, and it would be hard work to get it from you ; besides, no one can use it more dexterously than yourself. Now, then, we will push the boat up the cheek of the stream till we come to the head of it. That will do. Now shoot her across the gorge, and down she goes merrily, broadside foremost, according to rule. Cap, Charlie, cap, man ; we are drifting down like mad; keep back your end of the boat." " Aweel, aweel, she gangs cannily now ; look, uncle, a muckle fish before ye ; or ever ye kent, the maister's leister gaed through him, and played auld dife. That side, that side, Jamie ; — he's rinnin up to get past. Od, ye have him; and I hae anither, and anither. Keep a gude light, Tom. Now let us tak' up the boat to the head of the stream, or ever we look the stanes, for there war a muckle fish ganged by that none o' ye gomrells ever saw. There, we are high eneuch now ; baud yer STRIKING TROM AN EMINENCE. 241 hand, and let her faw doon again : hey, but I see him the noo afore mc ; — on, what an awfu' beast " So saying, Charlie drove his leister furiously at him ; but whether one of the prongs struck against the edge of the rock above him, which prevented its descent to the bottom, or from whatever other cause, the stroke was unsuccessful, and as he lifted the barren weapon out of the water, there arose a merry shout and guffaw from the spectators on the shore. " Cap ! cap ! " cried Charlie, " now hand yer hand ; gie me up the boat ; — od, but I'll hae him yet ; he's gone amangst thae hiding stanes." So saying, Charlie brought the head of the boat to the stream, pushed her liigher up, and pulled her ashore ; he then landed, and seizing a brand out of the fire, put it into Jamieson's hand, who preceded his eager steps like a male Thais, or one of the Eumenides in pantaloons. He now stood upon a rock which hung over the river, and from that eminence, and with the assistance of the firebrand, examined the bottom of it carefully. His body was bent over the water, and his ready leister held almost vertically ; as the light glared on his face you might see the keen glistening of his eye. In an instant he raised up his leister, and down he sprang from the rock right into the river, and with that wild bound nailed the salmon to the channel. There was a struggle with his arms for a few seconds ; he then passed his hands down the pole of the weajDon a little way, brought himself vertically over the fish, and lifted him aloft cheered by shouts of applause from his friends on the shore. R 242 A REPREEF FROM SIR WALTER. Two or three more fish were taken amongst the stones at the tail of the cast, and the sport in the carry- wheel being now ended, the fish Avere stowed in the hold of the boat, the crew jumped ashore, and a right hearty appeal was made to the whiskey bottle. It was first tendered to the veteran Tom Purdie, to whom it was always observed to have a natural gravitation, but to the astonislunent of all, he barely put his lips to the quaigh, and passed it to his nephew. " Wliy, uncle mon, what the deil's come ower ye ? I never kent ye refuse a drappie afore, no not sin I war a callant ; I canna thole to see ye gang that gait." " Why, I'll tell ye what it is, Charlie. I got a re- preef from Sir Walter for being fou the ither nicht." " Eh, uncle, how was that ? " " ' Why,' says Sir Walter, * Tom,' says he, * I sent for ye on Monday, and ye were not at hame at aight o' clock ; I doubt ye were fou, Tom :' ' I'll joust tell ye the hale truth,' says I, ' I gaed round by the men at wark at Rymer's Glen, and cam in by Tarfield ; then I went to Darnick, and had a glass o' whiskey wi' Sandy Trum- mel at Susy's, and I war joust coming awa when Rob steppit in, and cried for half a mutchkin. I was na for takkin mair, but the glasses were fiUed, and I did not like to be beat wi' them, so I tuk mine.' * And is that all you had, Tom ? ' said Sir Walter. ' Aye, indeed was it,' said I; 'but. Heaven have a care o' me, I never was the war of it, till I was ganging up by Jemmy Mercer's by Coat's Green ; and when I cam up by Kerr side I wanted to see Maister Laidlaw, but I thoucht I durst na gang in ; and how I got hame I dinna ken, for I never purdie's embarrassment. 243 mindet it na mair ; but our wife war in a terrible bad key the morning, because I war sail' wanted last niclit. ** ' Well,' said the maister, ' ye mun never do the like again, Tom.' We then ganged to the woods, and thinned the trees ; and I laboured with the axe at thae that Sir Walter marked. " ' Now Tom,' says he, * you will go home with me, for you have been working very hard, and a glass of whis- key will do you good ; ' and he cawed to Nicholson to bring Tom a glass o' Glenlivet. I tuk it doon; and, mon, if yee'd found it, it beat a' the whiskey I ever tasted in my life. * Well, Tom,' said Sir Walter, ' how do ye feel after it ? Do ye think another glass Avill do ye ony harm ? ' I said naetliing, but I thoucht I wad like anither, and Nicholson poured out ain, and I tuk it. Then the maister said, ' Tom, do ye feel ony thing the war o' it ? ' 'Nau, nau,' said I, 'but it's terrible powerfu', and three times as Strang as ony whiskey I ever drank in my life.' ' Then, Tom,' says Sir Walter, ' never tell me that three glasses o' Susy's whiskey will fill ye fou, when ye have drank twa of mine, which you say is three times as strong, and you feel aU the better for it.' Hey, mon, I never was so taen by the face in a' my life ! I didna ken where to luk. The deil faw me if ever he cotch me so again ! " Tom Purdie's forbearance, however, was not of an enduring quality ; liis eyes gHstened as he followed the course of the bottle ; three times was his arm extended to make a grap at it, and thrice did he draw it back with modest confusion. At length when all were served he could hold out no longer, but elongating his dexter, R 2 244 BENIGN EXPLANATION. he laid fast hold of the bottle, and filling the quaigh to the brim, " Here goes," said he, " to the lousy stranger." After he had drunk, and mended his draught, he kept the bottle in his own custody with a pretty smart allowance in it, in the character of residuary legatee. I had an account, however, to settle with him ; for being the only stranger in company, I fancied his toast meant a re- flection upon my cleanliness. What did he mean by the dirty and degrading epithet? This I demanded, advancing with a warUke countenance, and leister in the rest ; and had not Tom been in a very benign humour, tliis book might never have been inflicted on the public, for the man was well armed and resolute, and might have leistered me according to art. But putting on his sweetest smile, he assured me that by the " lousy stranger " he meant a newly run fish with tide lice on it, "which," said he, " are far the best, ye ken." This I well knew, though the appUcation did not occur to me at the moment. And here, by the way I beg to observe, how^ever odd it may seem, that you may know the best clean fish, by their having tide lice upon them. " All hands to the boat again. Come, E-ob, give us a merry blaze ; never spare the tar barrel : well done, Vulcan ! Now we have a splendid light on the water, and can see well enough to read small print at the bot- tom of it." " Sandy Trammel, ye great bear, what gars ye stamp and scream at that rate ? " Sandy in fact not only stamped and screamed, but swore that he was dreadfully brunt with the pieces of charcoal and drops of flaming pitch which insinuated SANDY TRUMMEL'S MISHAP. 245 themselves between his shirt and cape of his jacket be- hind ; whereat Tom Purdie, who was a considerate and humane man, took up the scoop which was used for ladling out the boat, and filling that capacious utensil with water to the extent of its capacity, came behind the aggrieved, and emptied the whole contents down his back. " And now Sandy, mon," says he, " I hae made ye quite comfortable, and ye owe me a gude turn." But, who would have thought it ? The blood of the Trammels was up ; and seizing a firebrand in a style that did little honour to his gratitude, the diluted one rushed forward intent on vengeance. Grim looked Tom Purdie, and charging with his leister, he held the foeman at bay. Who can say what Homeric deeds might not have been done, had not Charlie, first whispering to the master to stand fast, given the boat a sudden whirl round with the stroke of an oar, which laid Tom Purdie flat upon his back at the bottom of the boat, and canted Sandy Trammel fairly overboard? He fell in rather a picturesque attitude, for which I cannot in candour give him much credit, as the affair seemed to be quite involuntary and too sudden for him to study effect. His right hand held the torch aloft for a moment, Marmion fashion, which soon fell and hissed in the current with a train of smoke which trailed along the surface of the water. Sandy's feet were actively employed in kicking his best, by which means he agitated the water in such a manner that, with the assistance of the light, it made a very brilliant and imposing appearance. The stream here being very shallow, he soon began to emerge, and about two thirds of his fair proportions rose up from R 3 246 BRIG-END POOL. the channel ; his mouth seemed full of water and abuse ; he soon got rid of the one ; but before he could vent the other, he was anticipated by the boat's crew, who all shouted out shame upon him for his awkwardness, and for having nearly upset the boat in his fall, and endan- gered the lives of several worthy individuals. Thus a sort of balance was struck between faults on both sides, and Tom Purdie himself assisted him to regain the boat ; " and Sandy mon," said he, as he lifted him in, " I shall be always willing to do ye the same good service when ye need it ; so yee'l let me ken when the burning pick gets aboard ye again." They now passed over some bare streams where no salmon would lie ; the navigation amongst the rocks was somewhat intricate, there being barely room for the width of the boat in some of the rapids ; but Charles Purdie hit the tiling off to a nicety. They then burned the Glass-ivheel Pot, the Oak Tree, and the Noirs, in all of which they got a few fish. " Rob," said Charlie, " wail out some o' yer sticks that they may be weel kinelt afore we get into Brig-end Pule ; now, lads, ye mun cap well here, for she will gang ower the stream wi' a terrible flee ; od, I see them glancing down the pule as thick as herrin ; Sandy, mon, but ye 're dancing again ; what's come ower ye ? ye'U be wanting Tom Purdie's big ladle again, I'm thinkin." " The deil may hae Tam Purdie and his muckle ladle ; for as he nockit off a bit fish in the boat, he dung yun o' the taes o' the waster intil ma leg, he is aye sae camsterie." " Ye canna blame me, Sandy, for the mischanter, for COUNTING THE FISH. 247 ye are aye stammering among the fish like a haveril as ye are, and half foil into the bargain. Halloo, Sandy, ye'll no crack o' yer deeds the nicht, for yer waster's aye clanking against the stanes, whilst the maister is striking the fish afore ye by dizens ; and see, muckle Tarn has lifted in yim amaist as lang as himsel." " Come, come, lads," says the master, " hold your clish-ma-clavers, for we are just going into Brig-end Pool ; so keep back the boat as well as you can, or we shall go fiery fast over the stream." As the boat neared the pool, the men shouted out, " Auld Michael ! auld Michael ! the charm for auld Michael Scott : trim the boat, and take care the muckle wizard does na loup intil her." " Od, lads," cries Tom Purdie, " pit yer best fut foremost ; they are lying afore us like sacks, and will be as thick as you can dab them up. Mind the light, Sandy, and take care that kipper does na wallop out o' the boat. See what a muckle fish Charlie has got ! " In fact the men were making a great slaughter ; and when they had gone over the pool two or three times, had half filled the boat with the spoil; so as they found they were well laden, they called to Rob Colyard to come forward with his cart and take them home. " Shove the boat to the shore ; Colyard, come forrat wi' yer cart ; that'll do, mon ; aw bonds to wark, count the fish as ye pit them in ; Charlie, how many hae ye coonted ? " " There jest a hunder and twa, great and smaw, wliitling, bull-trout, saumonts, and a'thegither." The men passed round the whiskey bottle, and Ave R 4 248 THE BOAT SUNK. resumed our sport ; I, Harry Otter, stood as before at the head of the boat, and the other men in their allotted places ; we passed pretty swiftly down the streams, broadside in front, striking many fish, till we came near the Elfiin Burn, when, observing that the water- break in the centre of the river, caused by a concealed rock, was more gentle than usual, I thought the boat would strike, so I called out to Charlie for caution. " Houte, toute, he mun let her gang ; there is plenty of water to take her over." CharHe Purdic was never more mistaken in his life ; the stream drove us downward at a rapid race, not- withstanding Ave in some measure moderated it by capping oiu' best with the leisters. Bang went the boat's broadside right against the rock, to Avhich she stuck fast till the stream above poured into her in the most eflfective possible style, and down she went of course. The water, however, was by no means deep ; but those fish, which we had taken since the load went home, found their way again into the river, and began to vanish down the streams. Being deprived of life, they went passively along, followed by aU the boat's crew, who rushed about and charged with their leisters, " hurry, hurry, spalsh, spalsh," tUl they fished out most of them, the remainder being left to solace the eels. This in common parlance would be called a disaster ; a sort of shipwreck in miniature ; but judging from the merri- ment it excited, it might be deemed the best sport of the night. Whilst these gambols were carrying on, and the men were rolling about in the waters, after the guise of sea MICHAEL SCOTT. 249 calves, Charlie Purdie and I had got the boat to the shore, and heaving her upon her side, had poured the water out: " And now, Purdie," said I, " wliilst these clever fellows are catching dead fish, do tell me what you all meant by shouting out ' auld Michael ! ' and calling for the charm at the Brig-end Pool ? " " Why ye mun ken that Michael Scott, who lived in bygane times, was a warlock, and I cud tell ye mony wonderfu' cracks aboot him, for the hale country rings wi' his foul deeds. Mony years syne there was a brig at yon cast, but the spate ran away a' foreby the middle pillar, which stud up in the water as high as ever ; and as the fishermen o' thae days were burning the Nbirs, they saw a muckle man sitting a tap o' the pillar, wi' a flaming brand in the tae hand, and a lang leister in the tither ; he had a hairy cap on his head, made, per- haps, o' the fiu' o' the tod, or some sic like beastie, and a long gown on, wi' a linnen ch'ess aneath it, a' doon to his knees, tied rimd wi' a queer girdle, which was written aboot wi' magic words, and a lang whinger stuck intill it; we hae Sh- Walter's word for it, ye ken. Aweel, the fishermen who war in the boat were sair frightned, and in ganging doon the water, got as far frae him as they cud, and, as they thought, out o' reach o' him ; but he louped fr?^ the pillar intill the boat from an awfu' distance, and doon she went so soon as he set fut or hoof in her ; and a' the men war drowned, and left the bonny banks o' the Tweed wi' all their sins on theu' heads. Then the foul wizard, JNIichael Scott, was seen by some folks on shore, to rise up and loup on a muckle black horse, that came doon frae the cluds, and 250 A HINT TO PROPRIETORS OF RIVERS. he fleed awa on it till he became inveesable. The folk at Darnick pu'd down the pillar ; they did na lave ae stane on anither. Aye, aye, ye may laugh and call this clish-ma-claver if ye please, but it's true what I tell ye ; I have seen auld Michael mysel." " Where, Charlie, where ? " " Why aince on Cowden-knows I seed his wraith, and liis torch a tap o' the hill, and his muckle black horse feeding below on the moor, as plain as I see ye the noo ; and though he is not in life at this day, for he war killed by drinking the kail made o' a breme sow, yet his spirit is abraid, ye ken, and it war that which sent our boat to the bottom, for ye had na a fairy stane* ; but ye'll be wiser, I'm thinkin, afore ye burn that cast again." " Aye, that will I ; but courage, man ; all is set to rights, so let us have the whiskey, for with that and the blazing brands we shall be warm both within and with- out, and fear no wizards. But if wizards ever visit rivers, I hope they will open a slap in every cauld where there is no local act, so as to admit of the free run of fish ; for there are many fine-looking streams that are ' bridled with a curb of stone.' I do not wish to hurt the property of mill-owners ; but how easy it would be in such cases to accommodate all parties by making an opening at every barrier, and a proper sloj^e constructed with rolling stones at the back of it ; a hatch to be put in at the opening, and drawn only when there Avas a superfluity of water for the mill. This plan would * See note at page 226. THE OTTEK. 251 answer perfectly; for in very low water fish do not travel, and in a very high one, when they do, the miller would suffer no loss." " Well, I wad na say but ye are perfectly right, and I am tliinking that a river, like a road, should be open for all passengers." Most of the dead salmon having been at length forked out of the river, we aU got afloat again, and passed down those rapids above Melrose Bridge, called " the Quarry Stream,'''' " Back Brae^'' and *' Kingsivell Lees,^'' snatching out a fish occasionally in our course; then the flame soon gleamed upon the bridge, struck upwards on the roof of the vast arch as we shot thi'ough it, and revealed the dark pines below, which shelved down to the margin of the river. We were now in a salmon cast called " the Whirls,^'' which runs deep and solemn, and we had scarcely set our leisters in the rest, ere we found that a fisherman had been to work before us, and an excellent hand he was at the sport ; he had neither light nor boat, and, being tolerably hungry, I suppose, was devouring a tAvclve-pounder, all raw as it was, in the dry channel of the river. " See ! the otter, the otter ! he has got into the water. Bring round the boat, — quick, quick. Now keep her on the edge of the deep current, and we shall leister hun to a certainty." No such thing. He had not yet made up his mind to be leistered; and, being of a solitary disposition, rather shunned our society than otherwise; so, instead of attempting to gain the main stream, he went insidiously down the shallows, where 252 TWAE CAN TLAY AT THAT. no boat coidd swim. He was thus out of the reach of being speared in the usual manner ; but Charlie Purdie had a go at him by flinging his leister from a dis- tance — " Nequicquam patrias tentasti lubricus artes, Vane Ligur." It was a complete failure. Charlie followed up the thing, however, by leaping out of the boat ; nothing could be fairer or more honourable, as he thus gave the amphibious animal the advantage of element. The men were all eager and in commotion ; so what with boat and lights, to say nothing of the dreadful tridents, the beast was faii'ly confused, and almost surrounded. Purdie, who had sent aAvay his leister upon a vain errand, albeit unarmed, continued the chase on foot, and at length gripped the brute by the tail ; there was pulling and splashing, till at last he held the otter up aloft triumphantly. Now as this position, though not precisely vertical, did not hapj)en to suit the brute's convenience, the subtle animal managed to twist round, and to fix his teeth on the captor's arm. This was rather disagreeable to Charlie, as the teeth of the otter abound in practical experiments. The posture of affairs then, you see, was as follows : — the tenacious Purdie had hold of the vermin with his dexter, and was loth to relinquish his grip ; the foe, nothing behind in tenacity, fixed his teeth in Charlie's sinister with equal perseverance ; thus both his arms were fully occupied. Nothing daunted, Charlie cried out with Spartan endurance, " Hey, lad, but twae can play at that!" So, extending his jaws, he fixed his grinders in THE KEEPER OF THE REGALIA. 253 the animal's throat and worried him exceedingly. In fine, after a very ludicrous struggle, he shook off my excellent namesake and flung him on the shore, where he was despatched with the leisters before he could regain the river. Thus ended " the battle of Otter- bourne ; " and thus ended, also, our sport for the night ; for the beast, no doubt, had disturbed that cast, which, together with the lower water, was set apart for another night's amusement. We now marched home with our spoil, triumphant ; — Sandy in front, with the blazing beacon over his shoulder to light our steps, as has been practised from time immemorial ; the others with the fish and leisters. One of the sj)ectators began a concordia discors with his bagpipe, but bad us adieu at Melrose Bridge, and the dulcet sounds died away among the pine woods and furze brakes of the Eildon Hills. Then it was that we had the good fortune to meet my most humorous and excellent friend Sir Adam Ferguson, who made rare amends for the loss of our piper, by singing the follow- ing strains in his richest style ; which, as they are not very well known in the South, I venture to subscribe. " The Laird o' Cockpon, he's proud and he's great ; His mind's ta'en up wi' the things o' the state ; He wanted a wife his braw house to keep, But favor wi' wooing was fashous to seek. " Down by the dyke-side a leddie did dwell, At the head o' his table he thocht she 'd look well, Macleish's ae dochter o' Claver's Ha' Lee, A penniless lass, wi' a lang pedigree. 254 THE AUTHOR BACKS OUT. " His wig was \yell pouthered, and maist gude as new ; His waistcoat was red, his coat it was blue ; A ring on his finger, his sword and cockt hat, And wha could refuse the laird wi' aw that ? " He mounted his meer, he rode cannilie, And rapt at the yett o' Clavers Ha' Lee ; ' Gae tell Mrs. Jean to come speedilie ben. She 's wanted to speak to the Laird o' Coekpen.' " Mrs. Jean she was makin' the elder flower wine ; ' And what 'brings the laird at sic a like time ? ' She threw afF her apron, put on her silk gown. Her mutch wi' red ribbons, and cam awa down. " And whan she cam in he bowed fu' low. And soon his errand he let her to know ; Amazed was the laird whan the leddle said naw, But wi' a laigh courtsy she turned awa. " Dum-foundered he was, nae sicgh did he gie, He mounted his meer, he rode cannilie ; But said to himsel, as he gaed through the glen, ' She was daft to refuse the laird o' Coekpen ! ' " It had been my intention to give an account of the burning of the water from Melrose Bridge to the Cauld Pool, and so on to Cow's Hole ; but the description, if faithful, would be so similar to the one already given, that it would be lamentably tiresome, and I have been ultra-tedious already. Besides, it must be considered that I have been out of my bed most part of the night ; that I am to the full as sleepy as any of my readers can possibly be ; and, moreover, that my back Is half frozen, whilst my front is scorched with the firebrands. Farewell, then, dear brothers of the angle ; and when you go forth to take your pleasure, either in the moun- FAREWELL. 255 tain stream that striio;o;les and roars throucrh the narrow pass, or in the majestic salmon river that sweeps in hicicl mazes through the vale, may your sport be ample, and your hearts light ! But should the fish prove more sagacious than yourselves, — a circumstance, excuse me, that is by no means impossible ; should they, alas — but fate avert it — reject your hooked gifts, the course of the river will always lead you to pleasant places. In these we leave you to the quiet enjoyment of the glorious works of the Creation, whether it may be your pleasure to go forth when the spring sheds its flowery fragrance, or in the more advanced season, when the sere leaf is shed incessantly and wafted on the surface of the swoln river. 257 APPENDIX. An act for the more effectual preservation and Increase of the Breed of Sahnon^ and for better regulating the Fisheries in the River Tweed, and the Rivers and Streams running into the same, and also within the mouth or entrance of the said River. [Royal Assent, 29th May 1830.] Whereas an act was passed in the eleventh year of the Preamble. ^ -^ 11 G.3. c 27. reign of liis late Majesty King George HI., intituled, " An act for regulating and improving the fisheries in the river Tweed, and the rivers and streams running into the same, and also within the mouth or entrance of the said river : " and whereas is g. 3. c. 46. another act was made in the fifteenth year of the reign of his said late Majesty, intituled, "An act for amending and ren- dering more effectual an act passed in the eleventh year of his px-esent Majesty's reign, intituled, ' An act for regulating and improving the fisheries in the river Tweed, and the rivers and streams running into the same, and also within the mouth or entrance of the said river:'" and whereas 37G.3. c. 48. another act was made in the thirty-seventh year of the reign of his late Majesty, intituled, " An act for altering, amending, and rendering more effectual two acts made in the eleventh and fifteenth years of the reign of his present Majesty, for the regulation and improvement of the fisheries in the river Tweed, and the rivers and streams running into the same, and also within the mouth or entrance of the said river : " and whereas another act was made in the forty-seventh year ^^^^ ^-^ ^ of the reign of his said late Majesty, intitided, " An act to S 258 APPENDIX. amend and render more efi'ectual three acts made in the eleventh, fifteenth, and thirty-seventh years of his present majesty, for the regulation and improvement of the fisheries in the river Tweed : " and whereas it has been found by experience that the said recited acts have become inadequate to the purposes intended, and that for several years past the salmon have rapidly decreased in the said river Tweed, and there is every reason to apprehend that a progressive de- crease will continue to take place, unless effectual measures be resorted to for the preservation of the breed of salmon, and fish of the salmon kind, in the said river ; and it is therefore expedient that the periods of the annual and weekly close-time should be enlarged, and that the said recited acts should be repealed, and that instead thereof further and other regulations should be made in lieu thereof; but as these purposes cannot be effected without the aid and authority of Recited acts parliament: may it therefore please your Majesty, that it '■^P'^''' ^ • ^^^y. ^g enacted, and be it enacted by the King's most ex- cellent Majesty, by and with the advice and consent of the lords spiritual and temporal, and commons, in this present parliament assembled, and by the authority of the same, that from and after the passing of this act, the said several recited acts passed in the eleventh, fifteenth, thirty-seventh, and forty-seventh years of the reign of his said late Majesty shall Periods in be, and the same are hereby repealed ; and that from and whicli salmon . n t • -in iipip siiaii not be after the passing oi this act it shall not be lawtul lor any person or persons to fish for or take in any way, except by means of angling or rod fishing, any salmon, grilse, sea trout, bull trout, whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind, in the said river Tweed, or in any river, rivulet, brook, or stream, or in any mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut which runs into or otherwise communicates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, at any time or times between the fifteenth day of October in any year and the fifteenth day of February in the year following ; nor by means of angling or rod fishing, at any time or times between TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 259 the first day of November in any year and the fifteenth day of February in the year following, nor in any way or by any means between six of the clock on Satm-day night and two of the clock on Monday morning, from the fifteenth day of February till the first day of June, or between six of the clock on Saturday night and six of the clock on Monday morning, from the first day of June till the fifteenth day of October in each year, any law, statute, or practice to the contrary not- withstanding. 2. And be it further enacted, that if at any time between Penalty on , fishing for the fifteenth day of October in any year and the fifteenth day or taking . salmon in the of February then next following, except as to fishing by annual and . , ^ . .p weekly means of angling or rod fishing, and as to such fishing, if at ciose-time. any time between the first day of November in any year and the fifteenth day of February then next following, or if at any time between six of the clock on Saturday night and two of the clock on Monday morning, from the fifteenth day of February to the first day of June, or between six of the clock on Saturday night and six of the clock on Monday morning, from the first day of June to the fifteenth day of October, any person or persons shall wilfully take, or shall fish for, or attempt to take, or aid or assist in taking, fishing for, or at- tempting to take, in or from the said river Tweed, or any river, rivulet, brook, or stream, or any mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut which runs into or other- wise communicates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, any salmon, grilse, sea trout, bull trout, whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind, every such person shall forfeit and pay any sum not less than 21. and not exceeding 201. for and in respect of each and every such ofience, and shall also forfeit each and every such fish so taken, and each and every boat, net, or engine so vised, or by which any such fish has been taken, or attempted to be taken, and also the further sum of 10*. for each and every such fish so taken. 3. And be it further enacted, that it shall not be lawful Penalties not _ ^ to be dirai- to nor in the power of the justice or justices, or sherift' or nished to s 2 APPENDIX. less than 10/. with regard to weekly close- time, but under certain cir- cumstances. No person to sell or knowingly possess fish caught in close-time. Stewart depute or substitute, before whom any conviction with regard to the weekly close-time shall be made, to mi- tigate the penalties herein contained in relation thereto to a less sum than 10/., unless the offence shall have been com- mitted within half an hour after six of the clock on Saturday night, or within half an hour before two of the clock on Monday morning, from the fifteenth day of February to the first day of June, or within half an hour after six of the clock on Saturday night, or within half an hour before six of the clock on Monday morning, from the first day of June to the fifteenth day of October, in which case the penalty may be mitigated as herein-before mentioned. 4. And be it further enacted, that from and after the pass- ing of this act, if any person or persons shall, between the fifteenth day of October in any year and the fifteenth day of February then next following, knowingly have in his, her, or their possession, or carry about, sell, offer, cry, proclaim, or expose to or for sale, or shall exchange for any goods, matter, or thing, any salmon, grilse, sea trout, bull trout, whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind caught at any time during the said period in the said river Tweed, or in any I'iver, rivulet, brook, stream, mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut which runs into or otherwise com- municates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, except such fish as are taken by means of angling or rod fishing, between the fifteenth day of October and the first day of November in any year, every such person shall forfeit and pay any sum not less than 1/. and not exceeding 21., for and in respect of each and every salmon, grilse, sea trout, bull trout, whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind so cried, offered for sale, sold, ex- changed, purchased, or found in the possession or proved to have been in the possession of axiy such person or persons as aforesaid, over and above forfeiting each and every such fish so sold, purchased, or found, and also over and above for- feiting every boat, cart, basket, or package in which the same may be found. TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 261 5. And be it further enacted, that the proof that such Persons in salmon, grilse, sea trout, bull trout, whitling, or other fish of FuchTs'h to° the salmon kind was not taken or killed in the said river thrsame* Tweed, or in any river, rivulet, brook, or stream, or in any taken in the miU pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut which runs into or otherwise communicates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, between the fifteenth day of October or the first day of November respectively and the fifteenth day of Feb- ruary, shall lie upon the person or persons in whose custody or possession the same shall be found, or who shall cry, ex- pose, offer for sale, exchange, or purchase the same as afore- said. 6. And be it further enacted, that from and after the pas- To prevent sing of this act, if any person or persons shall wilfully kill or tion of the take, or aid or assist in killing or taking, by any means or ' "" ' '^^' by any device, in or from the said river Tweed, or in or from any river, rivulet, brook or stream, or in any mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut, which runs into or otherwise communicates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance thereof ; or sell, purchase, or wilfully have in his, her, or their possession, any spawn, smolts, fry, or young brood of salmon, or of any other fish of the salmon kind ; or in any way, or by any device, wilfully obstruct the passage of such smolts, fry, or young brood, or injure or disturb any such spawn, smolts, or fry, or any spawning bed, bank, or shallow where the same may be ; every such person shall forfeit and pay a sum not less than 1/. and not exceeding 10/. for each and every such offence, and shall also forfeit and pay the further sum of 2s. for each of the smolts, fry, or young brood of the salmon kind so taken, killed, or destroyed, or found in his, her, or their pos- session, and shall also forfeit all nets and engines whereby the same have been killed or taken, together with the ham- pers, creels, or packages wherein the same may be found. 7. And be it further enacted, that if any person shall, after Penalty on the expii'ation of two months from and after the passing of S 3 262 APPENDIX. Having nets in possession deemed evi- dence of intent to trespass. Limits of the mouth of the Tweed. this act, trespass in or upon any ground adjacent or near to the said river Tweed, or any river, rivulet, brook or stream, mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut which runs into or otherwise communicates with the said river Tweed, or in or upon the said rivers and waters, or within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, with intent to take or kill salmon, grilse, sea trout, bull trout, whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind, or the smolts, spawn, or fry of such salmon or other fish, every such person shall forfeit and pay for every such oiFence not less than 10s. and not exceeding 5/. 8. And be it further enacted, that if any such trespasser or trespassers shall have in his, her, or their possession, or in the possession of any of them, (if more than one are together,) any net or implement whatever, whereby or wherewith salmon grilses, sea trouts, bull trouts, whitlings, or other fish of the salmon kind, are usually taken or killed, the pos- session thereof shall be deemed and taken to be suflftcient evidence of the intent of such trespasser or trespassers to commit such offence as aforesaid ; and in case such tres- passer or trespassers shall not have in his, her, or their pos- session any such net or implement as aforesaid, it shall in such case be lawful to and for the justice or justices, sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, before whom the complaint shall be heard, to infer, adjudge, and determine the intent of the trespasser or trespassers to commit such offence as afore- said, according to the evidence which may be adduced on the hearing of any complaint that may be made against such trespasser or trespassers, and to convict or discharge the offender or offenders accordingly. 9. And be it further enacted, that for the purposes of this act the limits of the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed shall be deemed to extend and shall extend from a newly erected pier, lately and formerly called Queen Eliza- beth's pier, along the sea coast on the south side of the said pier, five miles, and along the sea coast on the north side of the said pier, four miles, and shall also extend five miles in TWEED EISHEKIES ACT. 263 front of the mouth of the said river, and of the several lines of boundary herein -before mentioned, into the sea, such dis- tance towards the sea to be computed by lines drawn the one from the northern and the other from the southern extremity of the aforesaid boundaries, at right angles to a line drawn between the said northern and southern extremities. 10. And be it further enacted, that from and after the pas- To prevent n I . . (, 1 n 1 1 beating the smg 01 this act, it any person or persons shall beat the water, water, and , , . , . , making ille- or place or set any white object, or any bar net, or other net gai obstruc. . tions to the or nets, or other thing whatsoever, in, over, or across the runoffisii. said river Tweed, or in, over, or across any river, rivulet, brook or stream, miU pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, cut, pond, or other pool which runs into or otherwise communi- cates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or en- trance of the said river Tweed, so as to prevent, or for the purpose of preventing, the said fish from entering the said river Tweed, or from going up and down the said river, or any river, rivulet, brook or stream, mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, cut, pond, or other pool which runs into or other- wise communicates with the said river Tweed, or shall in any other way or in any other manner prevent the said fish from entering the said river, and going up and down the said rivers and waters before described ; every person so ofiend- ing shall for the first ofience forfeit and pay any sum not less than 10/. and not exceeding 201. ; and any sum not less than 20/. and not exceeding 40/., for every subsequent ofience : provided always, and be it further enacted, that nothing herein contained shall be deemed or construed to alter or afiect the modes or methods for taking and killing fish in the said rivers and waters, other than such as are by this act specially prohibited. 11. And be it further enacted, that every occupier of any Boats to be f, , ., .I'rT^i • -I • 1 removed in fishery in the said river 1 weed, or m the rivers and streams ciose-time. and other waters running into or otherwise communicating therewith, or in the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed shall, and they and each and every of them are hereby re- quired to remove and carry away from their several and re- s 4 \ 264 Exceptions. Boats not re- moved may be seized by bailifTs, &c. without any warrant. APPENDIX. spective fisheries, fishing shields, and fishing grounds, all boats, oars, nets, engines, and other tackle used and employed by them, or any or either of them, in the taking and killing such fish as aforesaid, excepting boats with their oars, used for angling or rod fishing ; on or before the seventeenth day of October in every year, to some place or places, to be named by the commissioners or overseers by this act appointed, where the same can be securely lodged and kept, so as to prevent their being used in fishing, and there to remain until the thirteenth day of February in the following year ; and each boat with its oars, so retained for the purpose of angling or rod fishing, shall be so removed and carried away on or before the third day of November in every year, and shall be lodged and kept and remain as aforesaid until the said thirteenth day of Feb- ruary in the following year ; and in case any such occupier or occupiers shall neglect or refuse to remove all and every such boats, nets, oars, and other tackle as aforesaid, and the same, so removed, to keep secured from the said fisheries and premises during the time aforesaid, every such person so refusing or neglecting, on being convicted thereof before any one or more justice or justices in England, or justice or jus- tices, or sheriff" or Stewart depute or substitute, in Scotland, shall, for every such offence forfeit and pay any sum not less than 51. and not exceeding 201. : provided always, that nothing herein contained shall be construed or held to extend to public ferry boats, nor to boats used by any propi'ietor or occupier of land adjoining the said rivers, solely for the trans- port of himself, or herself, or his or her family, but under the regulations herein-after specified in regard to such boats. 12. And be it further enacted, that it shall be lawful for any water bailiff" or water bailiff's, or other person or persons employed in the execution of this act, without any other autho- rity than this act, to seize all such fishing boats, oars, nets, engines, and other tackle, which shall not have been so re- moved as aforesaid (but excepting as aforesaid), and to convey and carry the same to some place of security, and give in- formation thereof to any justice or justices of the peace, or TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 265 any sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, within whose jurisdiction the same shall be so seized, and such justice or justices, or sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, respectively shall and may order all such boats, oars, nets, engines, and other tackle, to be burnt, cut to pieces, or otherwise destroyed or disposed of; and it shall and may also be lawful to and for every such water bailiff or water bailiffs, or other person or persons employed and acting under the authority of this act, at any time during the annual close-time to enter into or upon any fishery or fishing grounds, and without any war- rant or wai'rants, to search all and every the fishing shields and other premises belonging thereto, for any boats, oars, nets, engines, and other tackle, that may be deposited or concealed therein ; and in case any such shield is found to be locked up, and upon request the occupier of such shield shall refuse to open the door thereof, it shall be lawful for the water bailiff or water bailiffs, or other person or persons aforesaid to break open the door of such shield, and to search for any such boats, oars, nets, engines, or other tackle as aforesaid, and if found, to dispose of the same in like manner as last herein-before directed, in regard to boats, oars, nets, engines, and other tackle, when not removed as herein-before directed. 13. And be it fiu'ther enacted, that it shall be lawful for sheriffs and any such justice or justices, or sheriff or Stewart depute or powereVto substitute as aforesaid, upon application to him or them, made fa'nts 7o7' in writing, under the hands of any two or more of the pro- boatsy&f. prietors or occupiers of fisheries, in the said river Tweed, and he and they is and are hereby directed and required to autho- rize and direct by warrant, under his or their hand and seal, or hands and seals, in England, and under his or their hand or hands in Scotland, any constable, peace ofiicer, or water bailiff or water bailiffs, to be appointed under the authority of this act, with such assistants as may be necessary, to search between the seventeenth day of October and the third day of November, respectively, as hei'ein-before mentioned, and the thirteenth day of February in every year, all and every 266 APPENDIX. Regulations as to ferry boats and boats of pro- prietors and occupiers of land. Regulation of private boats. Any water bailiff may destroy nets, &c. the fishery and fisheries, fishing shields, and tlie lands and grounds adjoining thereto ; and all such boats, oars, nets, engines, and other tackle, as they shall find contrary to the regulations herein contained, upon such search, to remove and carry away at the expence of the owner or owners thereof. 14. And be it further enacted, that the tenant or occupier of every established and accustomed ferry for the conveyance of passengers, horses, and carriages across the said river Tweed, or across any other river running into or otherwise communicating therewith, shall have the name or names of the proprietor, and of the ferry, and the number of each boat, painted upon some conspicuous part of each and every boat so used by him, her, or them, in letters of two inches in length, and shall also keep the same locked up when not actually in use ; upon failure wherein, the occupier or proprietor of every such boat shall for every such offence forfeit and pay any sum not less than 51. and not exceeding 10/. ; and every such oc- cupier or proprietor who shall use, or permit or alloAV to be used, his, her, or their boat during close-time, for the purpose of fishing for salmon, grilse, or other fish of the salmon kind, shall forfeit and pay for every such offence not less than 10/. and not exceeding 30/., and the boat or boats shall be for- feited in like manner as boats used in fishing dviring close- time. 15. And be it further enacted, that each and every pro- prietor and occupier of fisheries within, or of land adjoining the said rivers and waters, who shall use any boat or boats for the purpose of fishing, or for any purpose, upon any of the said rivers or waters, shall have the name or names of every such proprietor or occupier painted upon their respective boats, with the number thereof, in like manner as is herein- before directed with respect to ferry boats, and subject to the like penalties and regulations as are herein-before declared as to ferry boats. 16. And be it further enacted, tliat if any net or other engine or device whatsoever, adapted for the taking or de- TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 267 stroying of salmon or fish of the sahnou kind, the owners of "f^^'^.'^^^gg^ which shall not be known to the bailiff discovering the same, shall be left or placed in the said river Tweed, or in any river, rivulet, brook, stream, pond, pool or other water, mill lead, miU dam, sluice or cut, which runs into or otherwise com- municates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance of the said river, at any time during the annual or weekly close-times, with the intent or for the purpose of fishing for or taking any salmon or fish of the salmon kind during the said close-times (which intention and piu-pose, with respect to nets, shall be legally and sufiiciently implied from their being left or placed, during the said close-times, in the state in which such nets are ordinarily used in fishing for or taking salmon or fish of the salmon kind,) it shall and may be lawful for any water bailiff or water bailiffs, or other person or persons, employed or acting under the authority of this act, to seize and to burn, cut to pieces, or otherwise destroy the same. 17. And be it fm'ther enacted, that in case any person or Penalty on , 1, . 1 f •! 1 • • 1 resisting or persons shall resist, or make forcible opposition to, or assault assaulting any high or petty constable, or other peace officer, sheriflf's officer, water bailiff, or any person employed in the due exe- cution of this act, every such person shall for every such offence forfeit and pay any sum not less than 51. 18. And whereas many idle and disorderly persons, who Penalty on are not owners or occupiers of any fishery in the said river persons fish- Ttveed, or within the limits of the mouth or entrance thereof, the mouth of or otherwise entitled to fish for salmon, grilses, salmon trouts, or whitlings, or other fish of the salmon kind in the said river, have and keep in their possession nets, engines, and other tackle adapted for the taking and killing such fish, and have made a practice of fishing therewith, not only upon the fish- eries in the said river Tweed, and the rivers therewith con- nected, but also within the mouth or entrance of the said river, and by such means not only take and destroy the said fish, but drive many of them from the coast, to the manifest loss and injury of the owners and occupiers of such fisheries ; the river, &c. 268 APPENDIX. Penalty on improper per- sons having nets in their possession for taking salmon, &c. be it tlierefore enacted, that from and after the passing of this act, if any such person or persons as aforesaid shall at any time or times take, fish for, or attempt to take, or aid or assist in taking, fishing for, or attempting to take, in or from the said river Tweed, or any river, rivulet, brook, or stream, or in any mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or cut, which runs into or otherwise communicates with the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, any salmon, grilse, sea trout, bull trout, whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind, every such person shall forfeit and pay any sum not less than 21. and not exceeding 20/., for and in respect of each and every such offence, over and above forfeiting each and every such fish so taken, and each and every boat, net, or engine so used, or by which any such fish hath been taken or attempted to be taken, and also the further sum of 10*. for each and every such fish so taken. 19. And be it also enacted, that it shall not be lawful for any person or persons within five miles of the said river Tweed, or any river, rivulet, brook, or stream, which runs into or otherwise communicates with the said river Tweed, not duly authorized by licence, or leave in writing, under the hand or hands of any owner or owners, occupier or occupiers of any fishery in any of the said rivers, to have in his, her, or their possession, except for the purpose of manufacturing or selling the same, or repairing the same for some owner or occupier of a fishery in one of the said rivers, any net, or engine of the description of those used for the taking of salmon, grilse, salmon trout, or whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind, and the person or persons convicted of offending herein shall for every such offence forfeit and pay any sum not less than 10/. and not exceeding 20/., and shall besides forfeit all and every the nets and engines so found in his, her, or their possession ; and the justice or justices, sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, before whom such person or persons shall be convicted, shall order and direct such nets or engines to be burned, cut to pieces, or otherwise de- stroyed. TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 269 20, And be it further enacted, that upon information in ^^^''"g^ writing, upon oath, to any justice or justices, or sheriff or gg^^ch war- stewai-t depute or substitute in Scotland, or any justice or fo"^\°i"n"' justices of the peace in England, or within the town and JJ^fi^ropfrp^er- liberties of the borough of Berwick-upon-Tweed, that the ^""j'^!'^'"! informant hath probable cause to suspect and doth suspect gg^^foP"*" that any person or persons residing within the jurisdiction of the said justice, sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute (not being an owner or occupier of any fishery in the river Tweed, or otherwise entitled to fish in the said river, or in any other river or water connected therewith) hath or have in his, her, or their custody or possession, or have lodged, placed, or concealed, or caused to be lodged, placed, or con- cealed, any net or nets, engines, or other tackle adapted for the taking or killing of salmon, grilses, or fish of the salmon kind, in any dwelling house or outhouse, or in any boat, coble, or other vessel, specifying the same, wherein the said justice or justices, sheriff or stewart depute or substitute hath or have jurisdiction respectively, it shall and may be lawful to and for the said justice or justices, sheriff or stewart depute or substitute, or any one or more of them, and he and they are hereby required to grant warrant or warrants, under his or their hand or hands in Scotland, or his or their hand and seal or hands and seals in England, authorizing and em- powering any constable or constables, sheriff's ofiicer or officers, or other peace officers or water bailiffs, to be ap- pointed under the authority of this act, conjunctly and severally, to search, in the day time, the houses of persons not duly authorized to use or have in their possession any of the nets or engines herein-before mentioned, and the same on discovery to seize and carry away. 21. And be it further enacted, that upon information in Magistrates ' ^ empowered writing, upon oath, to any justice or justices, or sheriff or *« 's^ue Stewart depute or substitute in Scotland, or any justice or r^P'^ upon i 7 ./ J information justices of the peace in England, that the informant hath offish being probable cause to suspect and believe, and doth suspect and taken and ^ 1 7 ± concealed. believe, that any salmon grilses^ salmon trouts, bull trouts, 270 APPENDIX. or wliitlings, which have been illegally taken or caught within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, or contrary to the provisions of this act, by any person or persons not duly authorized, are concealed in some dwelling house, outhouse, place or places (specifying the same), or in some cart or other vehicle then being within the jurisdiction of the said justice or justices, or sheriiF or stewart depute or substitute in Scotland, or justice or justices of the peace in England respectively, it shall be lawful for the said justice or justices, or sheriff or stewart depute or substitute in Scotland, or justices in England, or any one or more of them, and he and they are hereby required to authorize and direct by warrant vmder his or their hand or hands in Scotland, or his or their hand and seal or hands and seals in England, any high or petty constable or other peace officer, or any water bailiff or water bailiffs, to be appointed under the authority of this act, to search in the day time eveiy dwelling house, outhouse, place or places, cart or other vehicle wherein they have information that such fish as aforesaid are concealed ; and if upon such search any salmon grilse, salmon trout, bull trout, or Avhitling shall be there found, it shall be lawful to and for the said peace officer and other persons authorized as aforesaid, and he and they is and are hereby required to seize the same, and to bring the body or bodies of the person or persons in whose house, outhouse, or other place, or in whose custody, cart, or other vehicle the same shall be found, before the said justice or justices, sheriff or stewart depute or substitute in Scotland, or justice or justices of the peace in England, respectively, to answer and account for the same ; and the proof that the fish so fovmd upon such search was or were not taken or caught within the mouth or en- trance of the said river Tweed, or contrary to the provisions of this act, shall lie upon the person or persons in whose custody, or in whose house, outhouse, or other place, cart, or vehicle the same shall be found ; and if he or they shall fail to make good the same to the satisfaction of the said justice or justices, sheriff or stewart depute or substitute in Scotland, TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 271 or justice oi' justices in England, before whom he, she, or they shall be so brought as aforesaid, such person or persons shall stand, and be convicted of having such salmon, grilse, salmon trout, bull trout, or whitling in his, her, or their dwelling house, outhouse, or other place or places, cart, or other vehicle, knowing the same to have been taken or killed within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, or contrary to the provisions of this act, and shall severally forfeit for every such offence a sum not less than 21. and not exceeding 201., and also 10*. for every such fish so found. 22. And be it further enacted, that if any person or per- Penalty rn n ^ . f. , . destroyin.r sons shall at any time or times, axter the passing ot this act, salmon, .\r. . . by means of endeavour to take, kill or destroy, pursue, hurt or injure, any iime, .'.c. salmon, grilse, salmon trout, bull trout, or whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind, in the said river Tweed ; or in any river, rivulet, brook, stream, mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, cut, pond or other pool, which runs into or otherwise communicates with the said river Tweed, or in the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, by laying or using any hot lime or filth, refuse of gas, or any material or drug pernicious to fish, or by using any water in which any green lint or flax has been steeped, or letting off" stagnated water or any water impregnated with any material or di'ug pernicious to fish ; every such person, so offending, shall, for every such first offence, forfeit and pay any sum not less than 21. and not exceeding ol. ; and for every second and subsequent offence, any sum not less than 5/. and not exceeding 10/. 23. And be it further enacted, that if any person or persons Penalty on ". 1 . ^ laying dirt, whatsoever shall, at any time or times after the passing of &c. in the this act, lay or place any coal cinders or coal ashes, lime, refuse of gas works, or dirt or rubbish of any kind, or allow the same to fall into the said river Tweed at or below high water mark, every such person shall forfeit and pay the sum of \l. for every such offence. 24. Provided always, and be it further enacted, that saying of .' ' _ rights to nothing herein contained shall in anywise preiudice or affect manors, o ./ i J ^ seigniories, the right of the owners or proprietors, tenants or occupiers ^"f,,i°yf,Jg " 272 APPENDIX. mouth or entrance of the river Tweed. For regula- tion of mill dams, &c. of fisheries, or the right of any other person or persons, who now are or at any time or times hereafter shall or may be seised, possessed of, or entitled to any manors, seigniories, or royalties within the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed ; but that all and every such owners and proprietors, tenants or occupiers, and other person or persons last men- tioned, shall have and enjoy all such right of fishing within the said mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, as they have hitherto lawfully exercised and enjoyed, or could or might have lawfully enjoyed in case this act had not been made, so as such right be used and exercised at such times and seasons only, under such regulations and subject to such penalties and forfeitures as are herein-before directed concerning the fisheries in the said river Tweed, and within the mouth or entrance thereof, any thing in this act con- tained to the contrary in anywise notwithstanding. 25. And be it further enacted, that from and after the passing of this act, all mill dams, dikes, wears, caulds, and other permanent obstructions to the run of fish in the said river Tweed, or in any river or rivulet, brook or stream, running into the same, shall be so altered and constructed as to permit and allow of the free run of the fish over or through them in the main stream of the river, in the ordinary and mean state of such river or rivulet, brook or stream ; and in case the proprietors or occupiers of such mill dams, dikes, wears, caulds, and other obstructions, shall neglect so to alter and construct the same, it shall and may bo lawful to the commissioners or overseers herein-after mentioned, or any three or more of them, to send a requisition in writing to the proprietors and occupiers of the same, so as to alter them within six days after such requisition shall be made and served upon the proprietors and occupiers of the same, or left for him, her, or them, at his, her, or their usual place of residence ; and in default thereof, it shall and may be lawful for any justice or justices of the peace, or sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute within whose jurisdiction the said mill dams, dikes, wears, caulds, and other obstructions are situated, or TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 273 where the propi'ietors or occupiers shall be or reside, upon the application or information of anj one or more of the commis- sioners or persons hereinafter named, and on due proof being adduced before any justice or justices, sheriff or Stewart de- pute or substitute, of the service of the requisition, and that six days have elapsed since the service thereof, to order and direct such alteration to be made under the inspection and direction of a proper person to be named by him or them, and at the expence of the proprietor or occupier of the same, in such manner as may sufficiently effect the object intended with the least possible injury to such proprietor or occupier as aforesaid, such expence to be levied and recovered in the same manner as is hereinafter directed with respect to the levying and recovering of penalties and forfeitures. 26. And be it further enacted, that it shall not be lawful To prevent nets being tor any person or persons to place or set any net or nets oi placed within any description whatever nearer than fifty yards above or any cauid. below any dam, dike, wear, or cauld, in the said river Tweed, or in the other rivers and streams running into or otherwise communicating with the same ; or to affix any net, commonly called a cairn net, to any islet or cairn not connected with or adjoining to the banks of any of the said rivers or streams, nor to build any cairn in any part of any such river or stream which cau-n shall not adjoin the bank thereof; and any person found guilty of any such offence shall forfeit a sum not less than 1/. and not exceeding 101. for the fii'st offence, and not less than 21. and not exceeding 20/. for every sub- sequent offence, besides forfeiture of any such net or nets so placed or set. 27. And be it further enacted, that if any person or persons No pout nets, shall, during the period of the said annual close-time, fish with used in ciose- . . . , time. any pout net, or net of any other kind or description what- ever, in the river Tweed, or in any river, rivulet, brook or stream, mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut which communicates with the said river Tweed, or in the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, such person or persons so offending shall, for every such offence, T 274 APPENDIX. No nets, leisters, &c. to be used without li- cence. Fish taken in nets or otherwise, in open season, to be re- stored to the proprietor or occupier of fishings. Water bailiffs, &c. may seize and detain offenders. forfeit and pay any sum not less than 21. and not exceeding 201., over and above forfeiting such net or nets. 28. And be it further enacted, that it shall not be lawful for any person or persons not authorized, and therein par- ticulai'ly named, by hcence or leave in writing or printed, and under the hand of some owner or owners, occupier or occu- piers of a fishery in the said river Tweed, or in some river, rivulet, brook or stream, mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, cut, canal, pond or pool running into or otherwise communi- cating with the said river Tweed, or in the mouth or entrance of the said river Tweed, to fish with or use within such fishery any net, leister, salmon spear, or similar engine, or salmon tackle of any description whatever ; and every person so of- fending shall for every such offence forfeit and pay any sum not less than 10^. and not exceeding 2/., besides forfeiting the nets, leisters, or other similar engines or tackle so used by him or them ; and it shall and may be lawful for any water bailiff or water bailiffs, or other person or persons employed or acting under the authority of this act, to seize and detain all such nets, leisters, spears, or similar engines, or salmon tackle, from any person so fishing with the same, who does not upon demand show a licence or leave for using the same in manner before mentioned. 29. And be it further enacted, that if in the open season any person or persons, while in the act of fishing for river or fresh water trout, shall take any salmon, grilse, salmon trout, bull trout, sea trout, whitling, or other fish of the salmon kind, from any of the said rivers, streams, or waters, by any means whatever, such person or persons shall forthwith deliver up the same to the proprietor or occupier of the fishery where the same were taken, and in default thereof every such person shall forfeit a sum not less than 10^. and not exceeding 21. for every such fish so taken by him, her, or them. 30. And be it further enacted, that it shall be lawful for every water bailiff or other person whatever, without any warrant or authority other than this act, brevi manu to seize and detain any person who shall be fovuid committing any TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 275 offence against this act, and to convey such offender, or cause him to be conveyed by some constable or other peace oflicer, in case the offence is committed in England, before any justice of the peace for the county or borough in or near the place in which the offence shall be committed, who shall forthwith proceed against such offender according to law, and according to the provisions in this act contained ; and in case the offence is committed in Scotland, the offender or offenders shall be conveyed by the person or persons apprehending him or them, before the sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, or some justice or justices of the peace of the county or shire in or near the place in which the offence shall be committed, or where the offender or offenders shall reside or shall be found, who shall forthwith examine and discharge,- or commit such person or persons until caution de judicio sisti be found, as the case may require. 31. And for executing the purposes of this act, be it fur- commission- ° ^ ^ ers and ovei- ther enacted, that all and every the proprietors of salmon ^^^"^^ «p- •' , pointed. fishings in the said river Tweed, or in any river, rivulet, brook or stream, mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or other pool or cut, running into or otherwise commixni- cating with the same, or in the mouth or entrance of the said river, of the annual value of 30^. or which extend half a mile in length, where such fishings are only on one side of the water, or a quarter of a mile where such fishings com- prehend both sides of the water, one guardian of each minor, one trustee of every such estate, one member of each cor- poration or associated body holding, enjoying, or possessing such salmon fishings of the annual value or extent aforesaid, shall be and they are hereby appointed commissioners and overseers for the purposes before and hereinafter mentioned ; and it shall and may be lawful to and for the commissioners of Greenwich hospital, the dean and chapter of the cathedral church of Durham, the mayor and corporation of the town of Berwick, and the trustees under the will of Nathaniel late Lord Crewe, each to nominate and appoint, by an instrument in writing under their seal or seals, hand or hands, from T 2 276 APPENDIX. Power to commission- ers to name representa- tives. Penalty on commission- ers acting, if not qualified. Commis- sioners and overseers shall not act while holding places of profit. time to time, one person to be a commissioner and overseer as aforesaid, to represent each of them ; which person so nominated and appointed shall have the like powers to vote and act as the commissioners and overseers hereinbefore ap- pointed, such nomination and appointment to be, from time to time, revocable at the option of the party by or on whose account the said commissioners and overseers shall be respec- tively appointed. .32. And be it further enacted, that it shall and may be lawful to and for each and every person hereby appointed a commissioner and overseer for putting this act in execution to nominate and appoint by any instrument in writing under his hand, from time to time, one other commissioner to be proxy for and to represent and act in all or any meetings of the said commissioners and overseers, as the representative or proxy of the person by whom he is so nominated and ap- pointed ; which commissioner so nominated and appointed shall be entitled, in the absence of each such commissioner for whom he may be so appointed proxy, to vote at all such meetings for each commissioner by whom he is so appointed as well as for himself : f)rovided always, that in no case shall the person nominated, and the commissioner by whom he is so appointed, be entitled to vote at the same meeting for and in respect of the same fishing. 33. And be it enacted, that if any person not qualified as aforesaid shall nevertheless presume to act as a commis- sioner and overseer under the authority of this act, or to nominate and appoint any person to act for him, such person or persons so acting or nominating shall forfeit and pay the sum of 201. for every such offence, to any person who shall sue for the same in his majesty's courts of record at West- minster, or any court competent in Scotland, and the proof of qualification shall lie upon the defendant or defender. 34. And be it enacted, that if any person entitled to be a commissioner and overseer for putting this act in execution shall accept of any place of profit arising out of the rate of assessment hereinafter granted, such person shall from thence- TAVEED FISHERIES ACT. 277 forth, and while he continues to hold and enjoy such place of profit, be disabled to act as a commissioner and overseer ; and further, that it shall not be lawful for any person holding such i)lace of profit to represent and vote for any commis- sioner and overseer at any meeting for putting this act in execution ; and if any person shall offend in the premises, he shall forfeit and pay for every such offence the sum of 20/. 35. And be it enacted, that the said commissioners and First and subsequent overseers shall hold their first meeting for the purposes of meetings. this act on the third monday after the passing of this act, at Cornhiil, and their next meeting at Cornhill, on the first day of August thereafter ; and thereafter shall hold one general meeting in every year at Cornhill, upon the first day of Au- gust, except when the first day of August shall happen on a Sunday, in which case the annual general meeting for that year shall be held on the second day of August, with power to the said commissioners and overseers at their stated and other general meetings to adjourn to such other time and place as they shall think convenient. 36. And be it further enacted, that it shall be lawful for Power to caii any three commissioners and overseers from time to time to ""^^ '"^^' Ciill special general meetings of the said commissioners and overseers by a notice of the place and date of meeting sub- scribed by them, or by the clerk to the said commissioners and overseers, on their requisition to him, inserted at least twice in some one newspaper published in the county of Rox- burgh or in Berwick-upon-Tweed ; and if no newspaper shall be there published, then in two newspapers, the one pub- lished in Edinburgh, and the other in Newcastle-upon-Tyne, at least ten days before such meeting shall be held, and which advertisement shall specify the purposes of such meeting ; and it shall not be lawful at any such meeting to enter upon any other business than what shall be specified in the said requisition and advertisement. 37. And be it further enacted, that the quorum or number Regulations . as to special of commissioners and overseers necessary to do business in meetings. T 3 278 APPENDIX. Commis- sioners and overseers may appoint and remove officers. general stated or special meetings shall be five, and if less than five shall be present, the commissioners and overseers, or commissioner and overseer so present, shall have power to adjourn the meeting, and in that case notice shall be given of the day, place, and purpose of such adjourned meeting, by advertisement in any two such newspapers published as aforesaid, at least ten days before such adjoui-ned meeting ; and at every such meeting the commissioners and overseers present shall elect a chairman to preside for that meeting only, and the said chairman shall have no vote except in cases where the other commissioners and overseers present shall be equally divided, in which cases he shall have a casting or deciding vote : provided always, that it shall not be in the power of any adjourned or special meeting to alter or rescind any act done or resolution made by any annual general meeting ; and at all meetings whatsoever the com- missioners and overseers shall defray their own expences. 38. And be it further enacted, that it shall be lawful for the said commissioners and overseers, at their stated and other general meetings, from time to time to nominate and appoint treasui'ers and clerks, and such other officers as they shall tliink proper, with reasonable salaries ; and the said commissioners and overseers shall take sufficient secm'ity from every such treasurer and other officer having the care or custody of any money to be raised or received by virtue of this act, for the due execution of his office, as the said commissioners and overseers shall think proper ; and it shall be lawful for the said commissioners and overseers from time to time to remove and again to replace any such ti*easurers, clerks, and other officers, or any of them ; and such clerk or clerks shall attend the stated and other general meetings of the said commissioners and overseers, and shall, in a proper book or books to be provided for that purpose, enter and keep a true and perfect account of all the money to be received by virtue of this act, and of the application of the same, and of all the acts, px'oceedings, and transactions of the said com- missioners and overseers, by virtue of and under the authority TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 279 of this act ; and every commissioner and ovei'seer shall and may, at all convenient times, have recourse to and peruse and inspect the same gratis, and may demand and have copies thereof, or any part thereof, paying Qd. for every one hundi'ed words so to be copied ; and if any such clerk or clerks shall refuse to permit any of the said commissioners and overseers to inspect or peruse any such books at aU con- venient times and seasons, or refuse to make any such copy or copies in a reasonable time at the rate aforesaid, he or they shall for every such offence forfeit and pay any sum not ex- ceeding 5/. for the benefit of the said commissioners and over- seers ; and whenever such treasurer or clerk shall die, or be removed from or quit the service of the said commissioners and overseers, it shall be lawful for any five of the said com- missioners and overseers to appoint some other fit and proper person or persons to be treasurer or clerk, in the place of him or them so dying, being removed, or quitting the said service, until the then next general meeting of the said com- missioners and overseers, when such ajipointments shall be confirmed, or another treasurer or clerk shall be nominated and appointed in his or their stead. 39. Provided always, and be it further enacted, that it Same person shall not be lawful for the said commissioners and overseers c'^rk and to appoint the person or persons who may be appointed their clerk or clerks in the execution of this act, or the partner or partners of any such clerk or clerks, or the clerk or clerks or other person or persons in the service or employ of any such clerk or clerks, or of his or their partner or partners, the treasurer or treasui'ers for the purposes of this act, or to appoint any person or persons who may be appointed trea- surer or treasurers, or the partner or partners of any such treasurer or treasurers, or the clerk or clerks or other person or persons in the service or employ of any such treasurer or treasm-ers, or of his or their partner or partners, the clerk or clerks to the said commissioners and overseers ; and if any person shall accept both the offices of clerk and treasurer for the purposes of this act, or if any person or persons, being T 4 280 APPENmx. the partner or partners of any such clei'k or clerks, or the clerk or clerks or other person or persons in the service or employ of any such clerk or clerks, or of his or their partner or partners, shall accept the office of treasurer, or shall act as deputy of such treasurer or treasurers, or in any manner officiate for such treasurer or treasurers, or being the partner or partners of any such treasurer or treasurers, or the clerk or clerks or other person or persons in the service or employ of any such treasurer or treasurers, or of his or their partner or partners, shall accept the office of clerk in the execution of this act, or shall act as deputy of such clerk, or in any manner officiate for such clerk, or if any such treasurer or treasurers shall hold or accept any place or office of trust or profit under the said commissioners and overseers other than that of treasurer, every such person so offending shall for every such offence forfeit and pay the sum of 100/. to any person or persons vp^ho shall sue for the same, to be re- covered, with full costs of suit, in the same vray in which any of the penalties by this act imposed may be sued for and recovered. siMeTJand ^^- -^^^ ^^ ^* further enacted and declared, that the said may^ue and Commissioners and overseers may sue or be sued, for any name'^of Their Ki^ttcr or thing to bc donc in the execution of this act, in the clerk. name of their clerk for the time being, or in the name of any one of the said commissioners and overseers ; and that no action or suit wherein the said commissioners and overseers shall be concerned as plaintiffs or pursuers, or defendants or defenders, in the name of their clerk, or in the name of any one of the said commissioners and overseers, by virtue of this act, shall abate by the death or removal of any such clerk or commissioner and overseer, bvit that the clerk to the said commissioners and overseers for the time being, or any one of the said commissioners and overseers to be for that pur- pose nominated, if plaintiff or pursuer, or who may be sued if defendant or defender, shall be deemed to be the plaintiff or pursuer, or defendant or defender (as the case may be), in every such action or suit. TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 281 41. And be it further enacted, that the said commissioners District meetings and overseers, and their said repi'esentatives, at their first or and tiieir powers. at any of the stated general meetings assembled, or at any adjourned meeting advertised as aforesaid for that special purpose, may appoint different districts, for the better con- ducting and managing tlie several pui-poses of this act, and the times and places of meetings of commissioners and over- seers for each district ; and at such district meetings tlie commissioners and overseers or their said representatives shall have power to name a chairman, clerks and other of- ficers, with suitable salaries, and to take such securities from those appointed to offices of trust, for the due execution of their offices, as they shall think proper, and in district meetings three shall be a quorum, but any one or more at- tending sliaU have power to adjourn, and a particular report from each district, and a copy of the books of tlie proceedings kept within the same, shall be made to the general annual meeting in every year ; and, in case of failure or neglect, tlie clerk to the district shall forfeit and pay any sum not less than 10/. and not exceeding 20/, 42. And be it further enacted, that tlie clerks, collectors, Former and water bailiffs, or other officers, save and except the collectors . to continue treasurer, who have been appointed and employed in the tin replaced. execution of the said recited acts hereby repealed, shall respectively continue to exercise their several offices under this act, until they shall respectively be displaced or removed by the said commissioners and overseers, or be incapable of executing their offices, and shall be subject to the like rules and regulations in all respects whatsoever as if they had been appointed under and by virtue of this act. 43. And be it further enacted, that the said commissioners water bailiffs 1 1 • • 1 • . to be ap- and overseers, and their said representatives, m any general pointed. or adjourned meeting assembled, shall and may nominate and appoint such a number of conservators or water bailiffs, for the protection of the fisheries and detection of offenders, as to them shall appear expedient, or to authorize their district meetings, or any two or more commissioner or commissioners. 282 APPENDIX. to nominate and appoint such conservators or water bailiflFs, for sucli periods and at such salaries, and on such terms and conditions, as shall appear to be expedient ; and it shall be in the power of any general or district meeting of commissioners and overseers, or their said representatives, to remove such conservators or water bailiffs, or any of them, and appoint others in their room, and to make such alterations in regard to their salaries as to them shall appear proper ; and fui'ther, that it shall be lawful for any two commissioners and over- seers to supply and fill up any vacancy or vacancies that may occur by the death, resignation, or dismissal of any one or more conservators or water bailiffs till the next started general, adjourned, or special meeting be held ; and before any con- servator or water bailiffs shall be entitled to act under the authority of this act he shall take the oath following, before any competent magistrate ; videlicet, ^^^f.'l.°'^"'*'<"' " I, A. B., do solemnly swear, that I will duly and faithfully '" execute the office of a water bailiff, in terms of an act passed " in the year of the reign of King George the Fourth, " intituled [here take in the title of this ac^J. So help me " God." And if any person shall presume to act as a water bailiff under the authority of this act, without previously taking the oath hereinbefore appointed, he shall forfeit and pay for every such offence any sum not less than 10/. and not exceeding 20/. pnivers of 44. And bc it further enacted, that the water bailiffs ap- water bailiffs. . . p . . pointed as aforesaid shall, after being sworn into ofiice, be empowered to exercise the powers and authorities of con- stables in regard to all matters connected with this present act, in the same manner as if offences against this act were breaches of the peace, and, specially for the piu'pose of pre- venting offences or detecting and apprehending offenders, to enter upon any inclosed or uninclosed grounds adjoining the said river Tweed, or any river, rivulet, brook or stream, or any mill pool, mill lead, mill dam, sluice, pond, or cut running into or otherwise communicating with the said river Tweed, TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 283 and at all times, with theii' boats or otherwise, to enter upon all and every the fisheries in the said river Tweed, or within the mouth or entrance thereof, and the rivers and streams running into the same or communicating therewith ; and also to enter upon all brooks, mill pools, mill leads, mill dams, sluices, ponds, or other pools or cuts which run into or other- wise communicate with the said river Tweed, for the pur- pose of preventing and detecting unlawful fishings or ob- structions in the said rivers, streams, and waters, and to moor, anchor, or otherwise fix their boats at such places as they shall find convenient, provided that by such mooring, anchoring, or fixing their boats they do not obstruct or im- pede any legal mode of fishing. 45. And be it further enacted, that all justices of the peace Justices, and other magistrates shall and may act in the execution of ter°ested?n this act, notwithstanding such justice or magistrate shall be may act!' interested in any salmon fishing, except in any case where such justice or magistrate, or the lessee or occupier of any salmon fishing in which such justice or magistrate is inter- ested, is a party to the prosecution or case to be heard and determined by such justice or magistrate ; and also that every owners or owner, occupier of, or any person otherwise interested in any &TTot'in salmon fishery, and also every water bailiff, shall be and is wknesse".' hereby declared to be a competent witness to prove any offence committed against tliis act, unless he be a party in the prosecution. 46. And for defraying the expences to be incurred in car- Rate of as- !• i'i /*>/!• Ti -111 1 sessment to lying tins act into eiiect, be it enacted, that it shall and may be imposed. be lawful for the said commissioners and overseers, or their representatives, in general, stated, or adjourned meetings assembled, to be held under the authority of this act, to as- certain and impose a rate or assessment to be paid by the whole proprietors of salmon fishings in the said river Tweed, or in any river or stream running into or communicating with the same, and in the mouth or entrance of the said river, not exceeding 10/. per centum per annum to be paid for the first year, and annually thereafter in proportion to the rents 284 APPENDIX. or yearly value of their several salmon fisheries, and the same shall thereafter be paid either yearly or half yeaidy, as the said commissioners and overseers may from time to time direct and appoint, by the several tenants or occupiers of the said several salmon fisheries, for and on behalf of the re- spective owners or proprietors of the same, and for which payments such tenants or occupiers shall be entitled to relief from the respective owners or proprietors at settling or paying their usual rents, and failing any of the said rates or assessments being paid to the collector or collectors by any one or more of the said tenants or occupiers when reqviired, the same shall on demand be paid by the owner or proprietor or owners or proprietors of the salmon fisheries so possessed by such defaulter or defaulters ; and the rate or assessment made at such meeting shall be binding upon and enforced against every such owner or owners of a salmon fishery, and the said tenants or occupiers ; and for recovery of the said rates or assessments it shall and may be lawful to and for any sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, or any justice or justices of the peace, within whose jui-isdiction the defaulter's goods or effects may be found, to grant warrant for poinding or distraining the same, and to appraise them on the spot where found, and afterwards to sell the same by auction, for payment of the said rate or assessment, together with the full charges of such poinding, distress, af)praisement, and sale, and the surplus (if any) shall be paid when demanded to the persons whose effects shall have been so distrained and sold ; which warrants shall be granted by such sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, or justice or justices, upon an application made to him or them, and an attestation on oath signed by such collector or collectors certifying that the person or per- sons complained of was or were deficient in payment of the rate or assessment above mentioned, and expressing therein the arrears due by such person or pei'sons ; or the said com- missioners or overseers, or any two of them, shall and may prosecute any action or actions at law for the said rates or assessments or arrears thereof. TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 285 47. 'And be it further enacted, that the expences of ad- fc^Pj"fdebts, vertising for, preparing, procuring, and passing this act, and *" ^^ p^"^- the debts and sums of money abeady due, and obligations contracted by or under authority of the commissioners or overseers appointed by the said recited act of the forty- seventh year of the reign of his said late Majesty, shall be defrayed and discharged out of such rates or assessments, and the same shall afterwards be applied in defraying the Further ap- '■ '^ . . plication of salaries to clerks, collectors, officers, and water bailiffs, and the money, the other expences to be incurred under this act. 48. And be it fui'ther enacted, that all offences whatsoever Mode of re- ,.,, . T ,. n T • covery and which by virtue or under the authority ot this act are or application ..,,., . . of penalties shall be subject to or punishable with any pecuniary or other m England. penalties or forfeitures, shall and may in every case be heard, adjudged, and determined, in England, by or before any of the justice or justices of the peace, or magistrate or magis- trates for the county, division, or place wherein such penalty or forfeiture shall have been incurred, or where the offender or offenders shall reside or shall be found, in a summary way, upon information or complaint made and exhibited before him or them ; and upon any such information or complaint as aforesaid the said justice or justices, or ma- gistrate or magistrates, shall summon the party accused, and examine into the matter thereof, and if upon the confession of the party or parties accused, or on the oath of any one or more credible witness or witnesses, which oath the said justice or justices, or magistrate or magistrates, is and are hereby empowered and required to administer, the party or parties accused shall have been convicted of having com- mitted such offence or offences, then and in every such case the penalty or penalties, forfeiture or forfeitures, hereby made payable in respect of such offence or offences, together with the costs of conviction, to be ascertained by such justice or justices, or magistrate or magistrates, shall be forthwith paid by the party or parties so convicted as aforesaid ; and in case such party or parties so convicted shall refuse or neglect to pay the same forthwith, then the same shall and may, by 286 APPENDIX. warrant or warrants under tlie liaucl and seal or hands and seals of any such justice or justices, or magistrate or ma- gistrates, (which he and they is and are hereby authorized and empowered to grant,) be levied and recovered, together with the costs of conviction and recovery, to be ascertained as aforesaid, by distress and sale of the goods and effects of such oflFender or offenders, wherever such goods and effects can be found, rendering the overplus of the money arising by such sale, if any, after deducting the reasonable charges of taking, keeping, and selling such goods and effects, to the party or parties whose goods and effects shall be so distrained, and one half of such penalty shall be paid to the informer, and the other half to the said commissioners and overseers ap- pointed by or in virtue of this act, or to such person or persons as shall by them be in that behalf authorized to receive the same, and shall go and be applied and disposed of for and towards the same purposes as the said assessments herein- before authorized to be levied are applicable ; and the over- plus of the money levied remaining (if any there be), after any penalty or penalties, and aU costs, charges, and expences attending the levying and recovering thereof, are deducted (which costs and charges shall always be taxed, settled, and ascertained by and before the justice or justices, magistrate or magistrates, by or before whom any such offender shall be convicted), shall on demand be returned to the owner or owners of the goods and effects so distrained ; and it shall and may be lawful to and for such justice or justices, or ma- gistrate or magistrates, to order the offender or offenders so convicted to be detained in safe custody until return can be conveniently made to such warrant or warrants of distress, unless the said offender or offenders shall give sufficient secui'ity to the satisfaction of such justice or justices, or ma- gistrate or magistrates, for his or their appearance before the said justice or justices, or magistrate or magistrates, on such day or days as shaU be appointed for the return of such warrant or warrants of distress, such day or days not being more than seven days from the time of taking any such se- TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 287 ctirity, and which security the said justice or justices, or magistrate or magistrates, is and are hereby empowered to take by way of recognizance or otherwise ; but if upon the return of any such warrant it shall appear that no sufficient distress can be had whereupon to levy the said penalty or penalties, forfeiture or forfeitures, and such costs as aforesaid, and the same shall not be forthwith paid, or in case it shall appear to such justice or justices, or magistrate or magis- trates, either by the confession of the offender or offenders or otherwise, that the offender or offenders hath or have not sufficient goods and effects whereon such penalties or for- feitures and costs may be levied, were a warrant of distress issued, such justice or justices, or magistrate or magistrates, shall not be required to issue a warrant of distress ; and thereupon it shall be lawful for such justice or justices, or magistrate or magistrates, and he and they is and are hereby required and empowered, for the first offence against this act, by warrant or warrants under his or their hand and seal or hands and seals, to commit such offender or offenders to the common gaol or house of correction of the county, division, or place respectively within the jurisdiction of which the place may be situated where the offence was committed, or where the offender may be or reside, there to remain without bail or mainprize for any time not exceeding two calendar months nor less than one month ; for the second offence, any time not exceeding four months nor less than two months ; and for the third and every subsequent offence, for any time not exceeding six months nor less than three months, or until such offender or offenders shall have paid such penalty or penalties, forfeiture or forfeitures, and all costs and charges attending such pi-oceedings as aforesaid, to be ascertained by such justice or justices, or magistrate or ma- gistrates, or shall otherwise be discharged by due course of law. 49. And be it further enacted, that all and every justice Form of or justices, magistrate or magistrates, before whom any per- son or persons shall be convicted of any offence against this act, within that part of Great Britain called England, shall 288 APPENDIX. Appeal in England, and may cause the conviction to be drawn up in the following form of words, or any form of words to the same effect ; (that s to say,) ' Be it remembered, that on [the time of conviction] at [place ' oj" conviction] [name of offender] was duly convicted be- ' fore me [?iame and style of convicting justice or justices, ' magistrate or magistrates], for that tlie said [name of ' offender] on [time of committing offence] did [here state ' the offence against the act according to tJie act], contrary ' to the form of the statute made in the year of the ' reign of his Majesty King George IV., intituled [here set ^ forth the title of this act], and I do hereby adjudge the said ' [name of the offender] to pay and forfeit for the said offence ' the sum of [fine] and also the sum of for costs, to ' be distributed as by the said act is directed. Given under ' my hand and seal the day and year first above wrkten." 50. And be it further enacted, that it shall be lawful for any person or persons who shall think himself, herself, or themselves aggrieved by the judgment of any justice or jus- tices of the peace, or magistrate or magistrates, in England, or by any act or judgment of the said commissioners and over- seers, or other person or persons, done or given, or suffered to be done or given in pursuance of this act, or by any rate or assessment made in pursuance thereof, to appeal to the justices of the peace of the county, division, or jilace where such act shall have been done or such judgment shall have been given, or where such rate or assessment shall be leviable, at the next or next but one general quarter sessions of the peace, but that no such appeal shall be received, heard, or determined unless the appellant or appellants shall, within four days next after such act or jvidgment shall have been given, or such rate or assessment demanded, and fourteen days at least before the holding of such sessions, give or leave notice in writing, in case of conviction, as well at the public office of the clerk of the peace for such county, di- vision, or place where such person or persons shall be con- TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 289 victecl, as to the informer or prosecutor, or at the dwelling house of the informer or prosecutor, of his, her, or their intention to bring such appeal, and shall also enter into a recognizance or bail bond before such justice or justices, magistrate or magistrates, with two sufficient sureties in such sum as any such justice or justices, magistrate or magistrates, shall think fit conditioned to try such appeal, and likewise to pay the penalty, and also the costs of such appeal, in case judgment and sentence shall, upon the hearing thereof, be given against such aj^pellant or appellants, within foiu'teen days next after the determination thereof ; and shall also, in all cases of appeal against any act or judgment of any of the said commissioners and overseers or other person or persons, or against any rate or assessment, give or leave similar notices at the public office of the clerk of the peace for the county, division, or place, in which such appeal shall lie, and also to the person or persons appealed against, and shall enter into similar recognizance or bail bond conditioned to try such ap- peal, as likewise to pay all penalties, sum, and costs of such appeal in case judgment or sentence shall, upon the hearing thereof, be given against such appellant or appellants ; and the said justices, at their said sessions, shall and may, upon due proof of such notice given as aforesaid, hear and deter- mine every such appeal in a summary way, and shall award and order to the party in whose behalf such appeal shall be determined such costs and charges as they in theii' discretion shall think reasonable and just to be paid by the party or parties against whom such appeal shall be determined ; and in case such costs and charges, together with the penalty, shall not be paid within the space of fom-teen days next after the hearing and determining of such appeal, the same may be levied by distress and sale of the goods and effects of the person or persons adjudged to pay the same, or his or their surety or sureties ; and in case any person or persons adjudged to pay such penalty and costs shall happen to go into or remove his goods or effects into any county, division, or place out of the jurisdiction of the said court where such u 290 APPENDIX. Recovery and applica- tion o( pe- nalties in Scotland. appeal shall be brought or heard, it shall and may be lawful for any justice or justices of the peace of or for the county, division, or place wherein such pei'son shall be or inhabit, or any of his goods or effects shall be found, upon application made to him or them for that purpose, and upon a true copy of the order for the payment of such penalties, costs, and charges being produced and proved by some credible witness upon oath, which oath any such justice or justices of the peace is and are hereby empowered and authorized to ad- minister, to grant his or their warrant in due form of law, in order to cause the money mentioned in such judgment to be levied by distress and sale of the goods and effects of the person or persons who is, are, or shall be adjudged and ought to pay the same ; yet, nevertheless, to return the overplus (if any) to the person or persons entitled thereto ; and the de- termination of such justice or justices at such quarter sessions shall not be subject to any challenge or review, but shall be final and conclusive to aU intents and purposes whatsoever ; and no proceeding to be had, touching the conviction of any offender or offenders against this act, or any order made, or other matter or thing to be done or transacted, in or relating to the execution of this act, shall be vacated or quashed for want of form, or be removed by certiorari or any other writ or process whatsoever. 5 1 . And be it further enacted, that all offences whatsoever which by virtue or under the authority of this act are or shall be subject to or be punishable with any pecuniary or other penalties or forfeitures, shall and may in every case be heard, adjudged, and determined, in Scotland, by or before the sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, or before any one or more justice or justices of the peace in any shire, stewartry, burgh, or place, in Scotland, as aforesaid, wherein such penalty or forfeiture shall have been incurred, or where the offender or offenders shall reside, or shall be found, by and at the instance of the public prosecutor of the county, dis- trict, or place where the offence may be committed, or where the offender or offenders shall reside or shall be found, or at TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 291 the instance of any one or more of the commissioners and overseers appointed by or in virtue of this act, or at the in- stance of their clerk or clerks for the time being ; and in recovering the several penalties imposed by this act or any other act for the preservation of the salmon fisheries in Scotland, it shall be lawful for the sheriif, or Stewart depute or substitute, or justice or justices, before whom any complaint for the recovery thereof may be brought, to proceed in a sum- mary way, and to grant warrant for bringing the parties com- plained of immediately before him or them, or for citing the party or parties complained of to appear before him or them upon previous notice or inducite of not less than six free days, served upon such party or parties, or left for him, her, or them, at his, her, or their last known usual place or places of abode, as such magistrate or magistrates shall see fit ; and in either case, on proof on oath by one or more credible witness or witnesses, or confession of the offence, or uY>on other legal evidence, or by the party or parties accused failing to appear before such magistrate or magistrates on the case being called, after such previous notice of not less than six free days has been served upon or left for the party or parties accused in manner aforesaid, he, she, or they shall be held as confessed, and thereupon such magistrate or magistrates shall proceed forthwith to determine and give judgment in such complaint ; and in case any person, who shall be convicted of any offence or offences against this act, shall not immediately upon such conviction pay down the penalty or penalties, with such costs of suit or prosecution in which he, she, or they shall have been so convicted, or as shall have been awarded, into the hands of the magistrate or magistrates as aforesaid by and before whom he, she, or they shall have been so convicted, or to some other person by them or any of them authorized to receive the same, in order that the same may be disposed of according to the directions of this act, it shall be lawful for any such magistrate or magistrates as aforesaid, to order any constable or other peace officer to take the charge of and keep in custody any such person so U 2 292 APPENDIX. convicted, and immediately thereupon eveiy such magistrate or magistrates is and are hereby authorized, empowered, and required to grant his or their warrant or warrants in due form of law, under his or their hand or hands, and thereby commit every such offender to the common gaol or house of cor- rection for the shire, stewartry, burgh, or place for which such magistrate or magistrates as aforesaid shall act for such time or times as hereinafter mentioned, unless such penalty and penalties and costs shall respectively be sooner paid, or otherwise such magistrate or magistrates shall and may grant his or their warrant or warrants, under his or their hand or hands, to levy and recover such penalty or penalties and costs by distress and sale of the offender's goods and effects; and all penalties and forfeitures which shall be so paid or levied as aforesaid shall, from time to time, be paid, applied, and disposed of as follows ; that is to say, one half to the in- former or informers, and the other half, after defraying all costs, charges, and expences attending the prosecution and the levying and recovering of the penalty, to the collector or col- lectors of the assessment hereinbefore imposed, and the same shall be applied and disposed of for and towards the same purposes as the said assessments are applicable ; and the overplus of the money levied remaining (if any there be) after any penalty or penalties, and all costs, charges, and ex- pences attending the levying and recovering thereof, are deducted, which costs, charges, and expences shall always be taxed, settled, and ascertained by and before the piagistrate or magistrates by or before whom any such offender shall be convicted, shall on demand be returned to the owner or owners of the goods and effects so distrained ; and in case sufficient distress or distresses shall not be found, or such penalty or penalties and costs shall not be immediately paid, then it shall be lawful for any such magistrate or magistrates, and he and they is and are hereby respectively authorized, empowered, and required, for the first offence, to commit every such offender or offenders to such gaol or house of con-ection as aforesaid, for any time not exceeding two TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 293 months or less than one mouth ; for the second offence, any time not exceeding four mouths nor less than two months ; and for the third and every other offence, for any time not exceeding six months nor less than three months, or until such offender or offenders shall have paid such penalty or penalties, forfeiture or forfeitures, and all costs and charges attending such proceedings as aforesaid, to be ascertained by such magistrate or magistrates, or shall otherwise be dis- charged in due course of law, 52. And be it further enacted, that it shall be lawful for Appeal in ' Scotland. any person or persons who shall think himself, herself, or themselves aggrieved by any judgment of any sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, justice or justices of the peace in Scotland, pronounced in any case arising under this act, or by assessment made under this act in Scotland, in case such judgment be pronounced by any sheriff or Stewart depute or substitute, to appeal to the next circuit court of justiciary, in the manner, and by and under the rules, limit- ations, conditions, and restrictions contained in the act passed in the twentieth year of the reign of King George II. for taking away and abolishing the heritable jurisdictions in Scotland; and in case such judgment shall be pronounced by any one or more justice or justices of the peace in Scotland, to appeal from the same to the next general, stated, or ad- journed meeting of justices of the peace of the county in which such justice or justices shall act, in quarter sessions assembled, under this provision in both cases, that the appellant or appellants shall, in place of finding caution in the terms prescribed by the said act, be bound to find caution to pay the penalty or penalties and expences awarded against him, her, or them by the sentence or sentences appealed from, in the event of the appeal or appeals being dismissed, or to the extent to which the said sentence may be sustained, together with any additional expences that shall be awarded by the circuit court, or court of quarter sessions, on dis- missing or deciding such appeal or appeals ; and it shall not be competent to appeal from or bring the judgments of any u 3 294 APPENDIX. Damages and charges, in case of dis- pute, to be settled by sheriffs and justices. Sheriffs and justices may proceed by summonses in the re- covery of penalties. justice or justices, or sheriff, or Stewart depute or substitute, acting under this act, under review by advocation or sus- pension, or by reduction, or in any other way than as herein provided. 53. And be it further enacted, that in all cases where by this act any damages or charges are directed to be paid, and the manner of ascertaining the amount thereof is not specified or provided for, the amount of such damages and charges, in case of nonpayment, or of any dispute respecting the same, shall be settled, ascertained, and determined by the sheriff, or Stewart depute or substitute, or by some justice or justices of the peace acting for the county or place within which the cause of such damage or charge shall have arisen ; and in all cases where by this act any damages or charges are directed or authorized to be paid or recovered, in ad- dition to any penalty or penalties for any offence or offences, the amount of such damages or charges, in case of dispute respecting the same, shall be settled, ascertained, and de- termined by the sheriff, or Stewart depute or substitute, or the justice or justices of the peace by or before whom any offender shall be convicted of any such offence or offences ; and the sheriff, or stewart depute or substitute, or justice or justices aforesaid respectively, is and are hereby authorized and required, on nonpayment of the damages and charges in any of the cases aforesaid, to levy such damages and charges by distress and sale of the offender's goods, chattels, and effects, in manner directed by this act for the levying of any penalties or forfeitures. 54. And be it further enacted, that in all cases in which by this act any penalty or forfeiture is imposed, or made re- coverable by information before a sheriff, or stewart depute or substitute, or justice or justices of the peace, it shall be lawful for any sheriff, or stewart depute or substitute, or jus- tice or justices of the peace to whom complaint shall be made of any offence against this act, to summon the party com- plained against before him or them, and on such summons to hear and determine the matter of such complaint ; and on TWEED FISHERIES ACT. 295 proof of the offence, by any of the ways herein specified, to convict the offender, and to adjudge him to pay the penalty or forfeiture incui'red, and to proceed to recover the same in manner by this act directed or at common law, although no infonnation in writing shall have been exhibited or taken by or before such sheriff, or Stewart depute or substitute, justice or justices, and all such proceedings by summons without in- formation shall be as good, valid, and effectual to aU intents and purposes, as if an information in wi'iting was or had been exhibited, 55. And be it further enacted, that no action at law shall Limitation ' of actions in be brought or commenced against any person or persons for England. anything done or to be done by virtue or in execution of this act, within that part of Great Britain called England, the town of Berwick-upon-Tweed, and the bounds and liberties thereof, until one calendar month after notice thereof in writing shall have been given to the person or persons against whom such action shall be intended to be brought, or left at his, her, or their last or usual place or places of abode, set- ting forth the cause of such action, and containing the name and place of abode of tlie plaintiff or plaintiffs, and also of his or their attorney ; and that every action brought for any thing done or to be done as aforesaid shall be brought within the space of three calendai* months next after the cause of action or complaint shall arise, and be laid and sued in the county, shire, division, city, or place where the fact shall have been committed, and not elsewhere ; and the defendant or defendants therein may plead the general issue, and give this act, and the special matter in evidence at any trial to be had thereupon, and that the same was done by virtue thereof; and also that it shall and may be lawful to and for such per- son or persons, at any time before action brought, to tender amends to the party complaining, or his or her agent or at- torney ; and in case the same is not accepted, to plead such tender in bar to the action, together with the plea of not guilty, and any other plea with the leave of the court ; and if on the trial of such action it shall appear that the same was brought before the expiration of one calendar month next 296 APPENDIX. after such notice shall have been so given or left as aforesaid, or after the end of thi-ee months next after the cause thereof shall have arisen, or if such action shall have been brought or laid in any other county or place than as aforesaid, or after sufficient tender or amends shall have been made to the party or parties aggrieved, that then and in any of the cases aforesaid, the jury shall find a verdict for and acquit the de- fendant or defendants in such action, or if the plaintiiF or plaintiffs shall discontinue the same, after the defendant or defendants shall have appeared, or shall be non-suited ; and if upon demurrer judgment shall be given against the plain- tiff or plaintiffs, the defendant or defendants in such action shall have double costs, and have the like remedies for re- covering the same as defendants have for recovering their costs in other cases at law ; and that no action, suit, inform- ation, or other proceeding whatsoever shall be brought or commenced against any person or persons for any offence or offences against this act, unless the same shall be laid or commenced within six calendar months next after any such offence or offences shall have been committed. 56. And be it further enacted, that no action shall be brought against any person or persons for any thing done or to be done by virtue of or in the execution of this act within that part of Great Britain called Scotland, unless such action shall be commenced within the space of six calendar months next after the cause of complaint shall have arisen ; and in all such actions, the defender or defenders, if absolved or as- soilzied from the action, shall have and be entitled to their full costs of suit. Persons 57. And be it further enacted, that where any offender punished ' , •' under this act shall be punished for any offence by virtue of this act, such not to be ^ . "^ •' . again prose- offender shall not again be prosecuted, nor incur any penalty by virtue of any other law or statute now in force, or be liable to any other punishment for the same offence. Public act. 58. And be it further enacted, that this act shall be deemed and taken to be a public act, and shall be judicially taken notice of as such by all judges, justices, and others, without being specially pleaded. Limitations of actions in Scotland. GROWTH OF THE SALMON. 297 ROYAL SOCIETY OF EDINBURGH. January 9th, 1843. — The following communications were read : — 1. " On the Growth of the Salmon," by Mi\ John Young, Sutherlandshire. Mr. Young has hei'e taken up the subject of the salmon's growth where it was necessarily left off by Mr. Shaw. So far as the earliest or fresh- water state of the fish is concerned, he entirely agrees with the observer just named. He then states the various opinions which prevail regarding the more or less rapid growth of smolts and grilse, and shows, by tabular lists (the result of frequently repeated experiments), that the in- crease in their dimensions is extraordinary, so soon as they descend into the salt water. So far back as the months of April and May, 1837, he marked a number of descending smolts, by making a peculiar perforation in the caudal fin by means of small nipping-irons constructed for the purpose. He recaptured a considerable number of them ascending the rivers as grilse, in the course of the ensuing months of June and July, weighing several pounds each, more or less, ac- cording to the diiference in the length of their sojourn in the sea. Again in April and May, 1842, he marked a number of descending smolts, by clipping off the little adipose fin upon the back. In June and July he caught several of them re- turning up the river, and bearing his peculiar mark, the adi- pose fin being absent. Two or three specimens were exhibited to the Society. One marked in April, and re-captured on the 30th of July, weighed three and a half pounds. As the season advances grilse increase in size, those being the largest which abide the longest in the sea ; they spawn in the rivers after their first ascent, and before they have become adult salmon. ]Mr. Young also described various experiments instituted with the view of showing the transition of grilse into salmon. VTorks on Sporting', &.O. — continued. THE CHACE, THE TURE, AND THE ROAD. BY NIMROD. Illustrated with Plates by Axken and Gilbert. LIST OF THE ILLUSTRATIONS. T?ie Chace. Hound and Horn. — Wild Boar Hunt. — Ashbt Pasture in the QuoRN Country. Snob just arrived. — "'Go along!' roars Mr. HoLYOAKE." Snob takes the lead. The Little Bay Horse ■WILL have no more. — " Seven out of the thirteen take it in THEIR STRIDE; THREE STOP SHORT, AND THREE FIND THEMSELVES in the middle of IT." — " Osbaldeston's 'Who-hoop' might have been heard at Cottesmore." — Hunting Dinner. The Turf. Racing Plate. — Arabian Mares brought to Charles H The Warren. Preparing to start. — " They are off again — a beautiful start, and still more beautiful sight." — "It is a terrible race. There are seven in front within the dis- tance, AND nothing else HAS A CHANCE TO WIN." JoCKEY AND Groom. The Road. The Leaders. — Mail Coach of 1742. — "'It's the Comet, and you must be as quick as lightning,'" — The Regulator on Hartford Bridge Flat. — '"Stop, Coachman! I have lost my hat and wig.'" — The Ring. Hyde Park. Second edition, Post 8vo, 9s. %d. MAXIMS AND HINTS ON ANGLING, CHESS, SHOOTING, AND OTHER MATTERS. BY RICHARD PENN, F.R.S. Second edition, with Woodcuts. Foolscap 8vo. 5s. NORWAY AND HER LAPLANDERS; With a Few Hints to the Salmon Fisher in Norway. BY JOHN MILFORD, ESQ. 8vo, 10s. 6(/. JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET. ^H THE LIBRARY UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA Santa Barbara THIS BOOK IS DUE ON THE LAST DATE STAMPED BELOW. MAY 2 7 1985 Series 9482 UC SOUTHERN REGIONAL LIBRARY FACILITY AA 000 990 648